kingwolf's Avatar
kingwolf Member Since October 19, 2009

Babysitting My Girlfriends Daughter

flip on Taboo Stories

Kathy and I had dated for almost 4 years, we each had our own place. I had a small apartment, Kathy had a nice house from her divorice. She has a daughter, Taylor, she was 11 now. Taylor and I got along great, her father wasn't around much, so she latched on to me right away. Anyway, I'm at my place and Kathy called to ask a favor, she needed to go out of town for 4 days, (fri.-mon.) and wanted

Summer sleepover

Jungleboy on Incest Stories

They were giggling as usual. Maybe a little louder than usual, but nothing new.

My daughter Ashley and her three best friends were having their monthly sleepover. They enjoyed the swimming pool during the day and the fact that Ashley had her own TV, video and a nice big bedroom at the far side of the house. I guess maybe also that Ashley's mother left us years ago, so they had only me to put up with.

“Hey, you guys, a little bit quieter please… the neighbours are going to complain!”

“Ok dad!”

I didn't even reach my st

Read More
udy yet when they were as loud as ever. I shook my head and tried to get back to work. I looked at the dark window. My mind took me back to this afternoon. They were swimming; frolicking around in their very small bikinis. Amazing how beautiful and firm their young bodies are. They were all around fifteen years old, but already had enough of everything in the right places. I shook my head again. I shouldn't be thinking like that.

The noise from the room was now really getting out of hand, and I took a walking stick from the closet with the aim of pretending to give them a hiding. When I opened the door, I don't know who was more shocked. All of them were only wearing panties, and Loren and Gloria were kissing. An empty bottle lay on the floor. Michelle was being “fed” a drink by Ashley. A porn video was playing, and I could smell cigarette smoke.

“What the…” I started, but was silenced by four shouting girls scrambling to cover themselves. “Ashley, the study… in five. Preferably dressed.” I said in the sternest voice I could muster. I could not believe what I had seen. But there was a stirring in my loin. The last couple of years I have noticed how Ashley had grown, and loved watching her beautiful legs as she walked around the house, sometimes only in a t-shirt and panty. I was very comfortable with my own or anybody else's nudity, but never wanted to push her to tan topless or anything. Seeing the four of them topless gave me a hard-on, and I was surprised at myself. It had been years since I last saw Ashley nude or near nude. I always gave her enough privacy. She wasn't shy though, and would walk around in very skimpy clothes. Now I had seen her semi-nude with beautiful firm breasts and very, very sexy. The vision played in my mind.

She knocked on the open door, and came in looking at the ground.

“What I want to say, I would like to say to all four of you.” When they returned, I caught them by surprise. “Before you say anything, I would like to apologize.” They all looked up. This was not what they were expecting. That is exactly why I did it. I wanted to catch them off-guard. “Ashley, you know I have always respected your privacy, and would never enter your room without knocking. I wanted to pretend to give you a hiding… Thus ladies, I want to apologize for invading your privacy.” There was an awkward silence. “That being said, you are all in big trouble. You were drinking and smoking. You ignored my requests to behave and to top it all you were being… naughty. Watching illegal movies…” I kept quiet for a moment, and then let the bomb drop. “I'll have to phone your parents in the morning.”

“Please Mr. Smith, you can't do that.” Michelle was a tall sexy thing, with long dark-brown hair, a great body, and beautiful breasts that I got a glimpse of before she could cover. She was a very outgoing person, and probably the leader of the pack.

“I can, and I have to. Your parents expect me to look after you and will hold me responsible if you do something foolish.”

“We will do anything, please just don't tell our parents!” Now she suddenly had a chorus.

“Please, please.”

I pondered the sorry looking bunch in front of me. I almost started laughing.

“Ok, I'll give you five minutes to think about what you are going to do to persuade me not to tell. And it better be good. I'm thinking along the lines of washing my car for a couple of months or repainting the garage. In other words: something substantial.”

Michelle knocked on the door this time. This was strange, Ashley was right at the back, almost hiding.

“Let's hear it...” I said.

They were all very uncomfortable as I sat back in my chair and looked at them.

“I, um, we were thinking of something a little different to washing the car.” I did not say a word; it just made them more uncomfortable. “We were thinking about something more personal.” With that, Michelle moved around the table and stood behind me. “I have been taking some massage lessons, and would gladly give you a massage.” With that, she started to massage my shoulders, and I must admit it felt good. I looked at the other three.

“So you think you can give me one massage and it's all over”

“I'll do as many as you want,” said Michelle.

“And what about the three of you”

“We will help her, she can teach us.” Loren was a petite girl with a model-like face and small perky breasts. Yeah, I saw them too.

“What if your massage isn't good enough?”

“It will be!” I could hear the indignation in Michelle's voice. “I'm so sure, you can test it first!”

“Ok, but I make all the rules, and all of you have to comply. If one does not comply, then I start phoning. And this applies to all aspects of future visits and sleepovers.”

“Deal” Michelle sounded very confident, but I could sense that the others were not so enthusiastic.

Ashley now spoke for the first time. “What kind of rules?”

“Nothing the four of you are not used too.” I was playing with words, but my mind was racing.

As agreed, I went to my room, got into boxers, and lay on the bed. They knocked and entered. I lay face down, but could see the room in the dresser mirror.

“Alright then, let's see how good you are Michelle. Both in doing and in teaching.” There was a bit of scuffling, and then Michelle followed by the rest got onto the bed and started rubbing some oil in.

“Oh wait… the rules remember! You have to do this topless. All of you.”

“Dad!”

“Don't start young lady… you were the ones who were topless earlier. If you were brave enough then, then be brave enough now!”

“I won't do it.”

“That's fine, I said, I'll start phoning in the morning.” There was an uncomfortable silence.

“I'll do it,” Michelle said. Silence.

“So will I” This was Gloria, an average girl with big boobs, probably D-cups.

“Ok, I'm in.,” said Loren.

In the mirror I could see them looking at Ashley, but she had her arms folded, and didn't seem like she would budge.

“You are going to get us all in big trouble, let alone ruin our sleepovers. We won't be permitted to come and swim here and all that just because you are shy” Michelle was now giving Ashley some lip. “Your dad already knows what happened tonight, but does he know about two weeks ago” Even in the mirror, I could see Ashley turn red and then pale.

“You wouldn't, you promised”, said Ashley.

“What happened two weeks ago” I enquired. Ashley's response was immediate:

“Nothing”

Although curious, I was much more interested in getting them to take their tops off.

“Well, remember, all of you or I start phoning”

“But Dad, I can't go topless in front of you…”

“You did earlier!”

“Dad, you weren't supposed to look”

“I couldn't help it! Anyway, you have nothing to be ashamed of.” Then Michelle said:

“Your dad is right, you have nice boobs, and he has already seen them.” With that she took her t-shirt off and said to Ashley: “Do it, or I'll tell about two weeks ago”

They all removed their garments. They were in their panties only. I was in heaven. Looking in the mirror, I could see that both Michelle and Ashley's boobs were so firm that they didn't even bounce when the two of them moved. Amazing. With Michelle's guidance I received a reasonable massage, and was nursing a major hard-on. About a half an hour later, they were finished, and was about to turn in for the night.

“Before you go… that was a good massage, but we'll have to see how well you cope with the rest of the rules”

“What other rules?”

I had turned around, and although the other three were covering themselves, Michelle stood there facing me in a daring stance with her hands on her hips. Those breasts were magic! She knew I was looking, and seemed to like it.

“I told you that I would be making all the rules from now.”

“Ok, so what else” She was almost disrespectful, but I didn't mind, as long as I had that view.

“Breakfast in bed… served topless by the four of you.” Silence.

“Ok” Michelle decided for them. “Anything else”

“Yes” I chirped back. “From this moment on, all of you will always be at least topless when visiting at this house.”

“What do you mean at least topless?”

“You may wear less if you want to!” With that they turned and left the room, but I could hear serious discussions down the corridor. “And I will add rules when I see fit!” I shouted after them.

I was up early, and waited patiently. There were a lot of noises from downstairs, and then they came to my room. They were all topless, with Michelle carrying the tray. The others were covering their assets with hands and arms.

“Drop your hands. The idea is for you to be as relaxed with your nudity as you were last night.”

“But we were… a little tipsy last night” Ashley said, hiding behind Loren.

“Don't remind me” I said.

“But Dad, it is now daylight, and we are sober” I reached for the phone next to the bed.

Michelle handed the tray to Loren, took Ashley by the hand and pulled her forward, then held Ashley's hands behind her back. She pushed Ashley forward and right up to me. Ashley was squirming, but Michelle held tight. Ashley's beautiful breasts were now inches from my face, and I marvelled at the sight.

“Just perfect” I said aloud, realizing to late what I said.

“Dad!”

“I'm talking about Michelle taking charge.” I was a salesman by nature, and thought on my feet. “Ok then, no more hiccups like this, I don't want to argue about every rule.” They turned to leave, but I called them back. “Do we have an agreement? No more arguments about rules!” They nodded in agreement.

After breakfast, I announced that I would be going to town, and asked if they needed anything. I promised to bring them something special. As I was about to leave, I saw them getting ready to swim and tan.

“You can swim and tan nude if you want to, I normally do, and nobody can see you.”

“I saw you!” Ashley dropped her head and turned bright red.

“When?”

She was still red, and looked away. All her friends stared at her.

“It was when I was ill; I suppose you forgot that I was home…”

“We'll talk about that later young lady. Spying on people. Shame on you.”

“But it was not intentional”.

All morning the only thing I could think about was what happened. I knew it was wrong, but I was thinking of some plan to get more out of them. Michelle was super sexy, and Ashley's body was just as great if not better, but she was my daughter. But the thought of her seeing me, turned me on. I did my normal chores, and then stopped by a sex shop. I bought four identical yet differently colored vibrators.  Then I bought a nice big dildo, lubricant and a very sexy and revealing outfit for each. I had them all separately gift-wrapped, and headed for the deli. I bought Ashley's favourite chocolates, and then bought a lot of spirit coolers, liqueur and some wine. I had plans!

When I arrived home, they were all tanning naked, and after enjoying the view for a couple of minutes, I made a noise to alert them to my presence. They covered their buts when I pretended to reach the kitchen.  Seeing them naked, even from a distance, made me crazy. Damn, I was horny.

“Coming to join us?” Michelle asked as I brought a cool box with ice and drinks to the poolside.  Ashley said:

“What is this? Now you are bringing us drinks?”

“Yes, you seem to enjoy it.”

I had my plans well worked out. After they all had some drinks, and started to relax, I casually took Ashley's chocolates from my bag. She absolutely loves them. When she saw what it was, she almost jumped up, realising just in time that she was nude.

“Dad, please bring me one, you know how much I love them.”

“Come fetch one… without your towel!”

“No!”

Looking at Michelle I said:

“I thought we had this situation under control”

“We do.” Then Michelle said to Ashley:

“Get up and go get that chocolate”. Ashley just shook her head.

I was prepared for this, and picked up my cell phone.

“Wait!”  Michelle said. “We agreed, and you are going to be sorry!”

“But he is my dad.”

“You saw him naked”.

“But…”

“No buts… we'll all get up together to fetch chocolates”

Ashley was not convinced, and the salesman in me took over:

“Ash, you are a beautiful and sexy young lady, with absolutely nothing to be ashamed of. You know I am not shy or offended by nudity, and I believe that you should be proud of the way you look.” There was a bit of a silence, and then Ashley surprised me by saying:

“Ok, but you too.” A chorus went up:

“Yeah, you too!”

“Deal!” I said.

They got up together, and I didn't know where to look first. I didn't want to stare, but it was impossible. Michelle was closest to me, and the least shy. She had a trimmed bush concealing her little pussy. With her dark hair, I could see almost nothing. Loren only had a landing strip, and I got a nice glimpse at her lips. Then Ashley got up and walked right up to me with the towel in front of her. She stopped inches from me, and when I looked up at her, she dropped the towel. I couldn't stop myself from looking down, and with me sitting and her standing; I had her totally bald pussy right in front of my face. It was beautiful.

“There, now you've seen me and you know my two-week old secret. I shave.” I didn't say a word, but got up and hugged her naked body.

“You're not mad?” she asked.

“Why would I be mad? I love a bald pussy!”

Michelle and Gloria had manoeuvred themselves behind me, and now started pulling at my swimming trunks.

“You too!” I didn't want to look away from Ashley. There was something in her eyes I had never seen before. When Loren joined the other two, Ashley chirped:

“Come-on dad, show them that monster” She turned red, and I said to her:

“Only if you promise not to call me dad when we are both naked…”

Michelle, Gloria, or both pulled my trunks down, and my semi-hard 8-inch dick sprung free. I knew that it was above average in thickness.

“Wow! I have never seen one that big.” This was Michelle's wisdom.

“That's because you have only seen school boys before” I was surprised at Ashley's remark. Michelle chirped back:

“Now suddenly you're the expert?”

“Don't argue ladies, we are here to enjoy the day.” With that, I turned and jumped in the pool. My hard-on was becoming uncomfortable. Loren and Ashley join me in the pool, and we splashed and played a little. My hard-on relaxed, and I got out.

“Pete, bring me my towel please.” It sounded so wrong yet so great to hear my daughter call me by my name.

“Only if I may help you dry.” I knew I was pushing my luck, but was delighted when she answered without any hesitation:

“I would love that!” I took my time, and enjoyed touching her all-over. I was really pushing my luck now and even dried over her pussy, looking for her reaction. All I got was the same strange look from earlier and a smile.

“Your turn” she said, and pushed me back onto the patio. She didn't even attempt to dry anywhere but my dick. It was hard in seconds.

“Look at that” Michelle almost shouted as she looked up from where she and Gloria were drying Loren. All three of them now joined Ashley, and I felt like a show horse being inspected.

“May I touch it Mr. Smith” Michelle being bold again.

“Sure, but when we are naked, I'm not Mr Smith…” Before Michelle had a chance, Ashley put her hand on my dick and said:

“Me first”. I was in heaven. My daughter had her hand on my raging hard-on, and three of her friends were awaiting a turn! They made turns to touch, play look and joke about it, but I was not complaining.

The drinks were flowing freely, and soon Gloria and Loren were kissing again. Ashley and Michele were sitting on either side of me and took turns playing with my dick and balls. Until now, Gloria and Loren had been the two kissing. Then Michelle leaned forward over me and kissed Ashley. Just a little kiss.

“That's just to say sorry about earlier” Ashley looked at her, then at me and then took Michelle's head in her hands and KISSED her. I could not believe it. Right there above me. Michelle still had her hands on my dick, but they were not moving. She was returning the kiss. I took the opportunity to put my hands on their backs, and started rubbing. The kiss was long, and when they broke it off Ashley said,

“That is how you are supposed to say sorry!”

I didn't take my hands off their backs, and slowly worked my way toward their chests. I touched Michelle's breast first. She didn't seem to mind. That gave me courage to touch Ashley. She didn't move, but I got that strange look again. It was the four most perfect breasts any man could hope to touch in one day. Firm, beautiful and responsive.

“You need to apologise to me too for spying on me while supposedly ill” Ashley looked at me and said:

“I can't kiss you dad!”

“I'm Pete; your dad is not here right now.” She hesitated for a second, and then bent down to kiss me. She sat back, and I looked up at her and Michelle. Then I pulled her down again and kissed her deeply. She responded in a way I have never experienced before. It was magic. When we broke off, we had a stunned audience.

“That is how you are supposed to say sorry!” I returned her words to her.

We went inside after that, because the sun was getting lower in the west and I still had many plans. They had forgotten about their gifts, and when they got inside, they were surprised to see gifts all over the kitchen table. They wanted to rip it open, but I stopped them.

“Those gifts are from an adult sex shop. You may open them, but on condition that you wear them in front of me or use them in front of me.”

“Deal!” Ashley loved surprises, and ripped open her garment first. At first glance, it looked like a normal lingerie piece, but closer inspection revealed that it had no crotch, leaving her pussy totally exposed. This prompted the others to open their similar gifts. They were more apprehensive about the little boxes.

What are these?”

“Gifts!” I smiled. I knew curiosity would get the better of them. Ashley opened hers first, and blushed.

“Dad, uh Pete, I can't use this…” Michelle chirped:

“Yeah, she is still a virgin!”

I didn't say a word. I was proud of Ashley, but in a way felt sorry for her. Obviously, it was an issue with the others.

Realising what their gifts were, they were not so keen to open them anymore.

“All for one and one for all” was my remark. Michelle opened hers, followed by the others. I said:

“Ash, you can at least play with yours a bit…”

The four of them sort of looked around, and then Ashley suggested:

“Let's go to Pete's room. The bed is big enough.”

I closed the blinds, and it was rather dark in the room. Then I lit a few scented candles, and that created the right atmosphere. They requested a few minutes alone, and I took the opportunity to fix drinks. I returned to the room to find the four of them playing, kissing and fondling and Loren had her vibrator buried in her pussy. Unbelievable!  I expected Gloria or Michelle to be able to take the whole vibrator, but Loren with her petite body? I had an instant hard-on. They took their drinks, and asked what the other gift was. I remarked that it was for two of them, with the same rules as earlier applying. They were apprehensive. I wasn't worried. Booze and curiosity would win.

Then I said:

“It is time for another rule”. Loren didn't even hear me. She had a date with her vibrator. The other three looked at me, but didn't seem worried.

“Michelle has been the most co-operative of the lot. I think she should be allowed to make a rule of her own.”

“Yes!” she shouted.

“Ok, but only one rule,” I said.

“I want Gloria and Loren to open the other gift!” Loren looked up from her trans-like state. Gloria slowly took the gift and handed it to Loren. They sat on the bed facing each other with this parcel between them.

“It won't bite you!” I said. They slowly opened it and Michelle had a look of anticipation on her young face. When they had the 14” dildo out, they all marvelled at it, but when ordered by Michelle to get on with it, Loren and Gloria were a little less enthusiastic.

“It's too big,” exclaimed Gloria.

“Bullshit” said Michelle. “Look at Pete; that is big!”

“But this is too long”

“You don't have to take the whole thing”

After a little convincing and a lot of lubrication, they had the dildo between them. Inch by inch they played with it until there was just a little bit visible in the middle. This meant that they each had about six-inches inside them. I couldn't believe that such young girls could accommodate that much. The sight was unbelievable. Two beautiful young bodies on their backs, with a dildo between them. Their legs were wide open and their young pussies spread and stretched. In the last 24 hours, I had seen more pussy up close than in years.

“Get more in there!” said Michelle.

“I can't” said Gloria. “Why don't you do it big mouth?”

I wouldn't mind seeing that either I thought to myself. Michelle's dark pubes were effective at hiding her pussy. Gloria didn't wait for an answer, but carefully slid out of her end. Loren obviously loved having something inside her, and she patiently waited. Through all of this, Ashley stood next to me transfixed.

Michelle slowly manoeuvred into place, and soon had six inches in her. It was an incredible sight. A long but relatively thin dildo was stretching her pussy. For the first time I could see her lips. I decided that her bush needed to go. I wanted to see her bald. However, for the time, I was being entertained by the amazing sight in front of me. Michelle was pushing harder than Gloria did previously, and Loren was squirming with delight. I could not believe that such a petite little body could accommodate half of a fourteen-inch dildo. They pushed harder at each other until their pussy lips were touching! For the most part, Loren had her eyes closed, but when she had her orgasm, she shouted, and when she opened her eyes, they were like that of an animal. A bewildered, primitive lust.

“You like that don't you?” Asked Ashley. She was looking at my hard-on, and then moved to stand behind me, reaching around and stroking my dick. I was in heaven.

“I also want to make a rule!” said Gloria.

“Me too” said Ashley.

“Ok, one rule each” was my response. Gloria was first.

“Ashley has been inactive the whole time. My rule is that she does a 69 on Pete!” I was surprised when no complaint was forthcoming from Ashley. The others all agreed. I lay down on the bed with my rock-hard dick poking the air. Ashley slowly moved next to me, and then lifted her leg over my face. I could not believe it. Here was the object of my dreams an inch above my face. She was beautiful. I could smell her. It was incredible. Her bald pussy was spread wide open and so close that I could touch it with my tongue. However, before I did, I was overwhelmed by a different sensation. Her breath was warm on my dick! I almost lost it. Then she touched my dick with her tongue, circling the tip. I felt like shouting. Then she stopped and asked:

“Do you mind, Pete?”

I didn't answer her, but simply touched her labia with my tongue.  She quivered, and then went back to licking my dick head. She didn't even try to get it in her mouth, but started licking up and down the length of my dick. Her slight musty taste drove me crazy. Her tongue made me crazy. I think I was about to go crazy. I don't know how long we were like that. It wasn't long enough. Using my tongue, I played with her clit. Ashley's legs started to tremble. Then she started shouting and sat up. I almost suffocated as she ground her virgin pussy into my face, but I wasn't going to complain. Then she came. Her whole body shook; she shouted and clawed at my legs. I have never seen anybody come like that. Apparently, the other girls haven't seen anything like it either, because when Ashley fell off me, we had three stunned faces looking at us. There was a little bit of a silence.

 “I want too see all these bitches that always tease me about being a virgin take that thick thing of yours. Loren first.” stated Ashley.

“I can't do that. It is illegal.  They're too young.”

“Loren has been fucking for years, you should realise that by the way she enjoys things in her pussy. I think she needs your thick dick” Hearing Ashley talk like that was a little bit shocking, but I liked it. I wasn't going to argue any further, but was unsure about Loren's reaction. Ashley said to Loren:

“On all fours. I want to see it. That's my rule.” Loren turned around as though she was a robot following a command. I didn't want to be accused of rape.

“Are you ok with it Loren?” She just nodded and reached for the lubricant. After some careful teasing, I managed to get about half my dick into her. She was so tight! I was afraid of hurting her, so I took it slow. She was passive at first, but after a while, she started pushing back at me. Her breathing was heavier now, and I got about six inches into her.

“I want to turn around!” she shouted. I withdrew slowly and let her lay on her back. That beautiful model-like face was in ecstasy. I was glad to see her enjoying it.

“Fuck me hard,” she said. I didn't need any more encouragement.

She was so petite, that I could not even kiss her while my dick was close to her pussy. She only reached my chest. I entered her slowly. She was incredibly tight. Soon I was back up to six inches, and slowly fucking her. Just the though of me fucking my daughter's fifteen-year old friend was mind-blowing. The fact that my daughter was actively encouraging it was amazing. Loren was like an animal. She grabbed my waist and pulled me closer.

“I want the whole thing!” she shouted. I started pushing harder. She shouted with every thrust, but kept on pulling me deeper. I lost my control, and thrust as hard as I could. She shouted at the top of her voice, her eyes were wild, but she did not let go of me; still pulling. I knew she was hurting, I could see it in her eyes, but she wanted more. I was in as deep as I could go; she had eight very thick inches in her. The tears were coming from her eyes, but still she pulled closer.

She had my eight-incher buried in her and wanted more! After the hard trust, I held still for a moment to let her relax. I started moving, and she yelled. But she held my waist and pulled me back in.

“Fuck me with all you've got!” I pounded her small body and very tight pussy as hard as I could. She shouted every time I pushed. I could sense that she was nearing orgasm. I thought she was going to pass out. The animal in her that I had seen earlier clawed at my back. She climaxed and shouted so loud that I was sure the neighbours would hear. Then she collapsed and I slowly withdrew.

“Wow” said Ashley. “Your turn Michelle”.

But I wanted Michelle alone, and devised a quick plan.

“No, Michelle's bush needs to go first!” Ashley and Loren took her to the bathroom, and I lay back on the bed. Without a word, Gloria climbed on top of me and guided my dick to her pussy. Another fifteen year old girl fucking me! She had huge but firm breasts, and I played with them as she slowly started to ride me. Soon she had about six inches in her, but seemed content with that. Her breathing was becoming faster, and she climaxed just as the other three came out of the bathroom.

“You bitch,” said Ashley. “I wanted to see”.

“Go and shave her too, then I'll fuck her again.” I said. This left me alone with the sexy little Michelle. I lay her on her back and immediately went down to her bald pussy. It was so beautiful. I licked all around it and then buried my tongue in her. She tasted so good. She went wild. Soon she was nearing an orgasm, and I stopped. Some lubrication on my dick, and I moved closer. She was so tight. I didn't think my dick-head would fit! But a little bit of playing, and I had about four inches in her. It was magic. So tight. The other three returned, and Ashley immediately said:

“Deeper. The bitch can take more than that” No complains were forthcoming from Michelle, so I pushed harder. I could see immediately that she was uncomfortable.

“It's too big,” said Michelle.

“Bullshit! Push it in Pete,” said Ashley. I didn't push deeper, but started going faster, and this seemed to satisfy Ashley. Michelle had a massive orgasm.

I had to re-do Gloria as instructed, but I was not complaining. Her pussy was now bald, and I prefer it that way. Ashley told us to do it doggy style, and then crawled in under us. She started to lick by balls while I was fucking her friend! This was too much. I looked over my shoulder to see Michelle's face buried between Ash's legs. I could hold out no longer. I blew my load deep into Gloria. She came almost at the same time, and then Ashley put her hands on my hips, pulling me out. When I popped out of Gloria, Ashley licked at her pussy, licking my cum that was dripping from her. I thought I would relax a little, but Michelle almost tackled me, pushing me down on my back and immediately started to lick at my dick. The next thing I saw was Loren's beautiful pussy right above my face, and I started to lick. She ground her great tasting fifteen-year-old pussy into my face. Then Michelle moved up. I had regained my hard-on, and she was positioning herself on it. She slowly worked herself down on my dick, and leaned forward to kiss Loren who was still trying her best to suffocate me. Michelle's pussy was extremely tight, and she had been the one least capable of accommodating my dick. But now she was in control, and more relaxed. I could feel her taking more and more.

The rest of the evening continued as a massive fuck-fest. Every time I believed that I was now spent, and unable to continue, the girls would do something to revive me. Eventually we all fell asleep.

Sunday morning I made them breakfast, and carried it all up to the bedroom before waking them. I was naked, and felt comfortable with it. I woke the girls, and we all sat there on the bed eating. There was a strange vibe. Everybody was nude, and everybody was comfortable, but still there was something in the air.

Michelle spoke for all when she said:

“I don't feel like going home now.”

“Yeah” was the chorus.

My brain was in top gear.

“What are your plans for the holidays” I asked.

“Nothing much”

“Same here.”

“Me too”.

“I haven't discussed this with Ash, but why don't we all go to the mountain” I asked looking at Ashley. Her face lit up

“Yes! That would be great” The others were unsure, and Michelle asked:

“What's in the mountain?” Ashley answered:

“We have a log home on the lake, with a boat and everything. It's beautiful.” 

“And private!” I added

“If you want, I'll speak to your parents. I'll explain that Ashley doesn't want to go and be all alone”

The mood changed after that, and everybody seemed content. Out of nowhere, Loren suddenly said:

“Ash, I don't know how to tell you this, but I don't want to see any of the school boys anymore.” Ashley had a puzzled look on her face, and Loren continued:

“I want your permission to come visit Pete when I… uh, need to fuck!” I could not believe that she was so blunt. Ashley looked at me, then smiled and said:

“I hope Pete can keep it up. Pardon the pun!” Michelle; always the leader, said:

“I think we will all be visiting much more, if that's ok”

“Ladies, you are always welcome!” I said, already becoming uncomfortable with my growing dick. Just the idea that I will be able to fuck them again was getting my dick to respond.

“Look at that, he really likes the idea!” Ashley was pointing at my hardening dick.

Before their parents picked them up during the course of the morning, we all had sex again. Loren managed to get the whole thing in her without a shout this time! Ashley was a little bit withdrawn, and I was worried about her.

After lunch, I lay next to the swimming pool and Ashley joined me. She was nude, and seemed very comfortable with the idea. I made small talk, but I knew she had something on her mind.

“This is much better…being able to tan nude”

“Yes” she said.

Are you ok?” I asked.

“I'm fine.” When the sun was getting lower, we went inside and sat down on the couch as usual. We were nude, but apart from that, this was our usual routine after her friends left. “Did you enjoy the weekend” I asked. 

“Sure” she said. We ate dinner and watched TV, but she was quiet. I could take it no longer, and said to her:

“Is it because I had sex with them or because they want to come back again?” She looked up and said:

“No it's not that at all. I like you fucking them. I'll tell you tonight.”

Now I was really worried. Something is bothering her, but what I decided to leave at that for time being. At around nine I said that I was retiring for the night, and she said she would see me in a couple of minutes.

I was in bed when she entered the room. We had been naked the whole day, but now she was wearing a t-shirt and panties.

“Can I sleep here tonight?” she asked. The last time she slept in my bed was many years ago during a thunderstorm, but I said:

“Of course… but I sleep naked.”

“So do I.” she said, turning around and taking her clothes off. She was so beautiful. Perfect breasts, bald pussy, perfect body…just perfect.

When she got in, I was lying on my back, and she curled up next to me, and immediately put her hand on my dick. It was hard in seconds. She slowly stroked my dick. I waited for her to talk first.

“Pete, I don't want to be the only virgin in the group anymore.” She stated, and suddenly everything made sense.

“That's understandable,” I said. “I even felt the pressure you got from the others.” 

“They just don't understand, I have somebody in mind, and don't just want to do it with anybody.”

“Ash, you are truly a beautiful, sexy lady, and I am very proud of you for being so adult about this. You are open-minded enough to play like today and yet you made a decision and stuck to it. I am so proud of you. All I ask is that you choose carefully. Guys will tell you anything to get what they want.” She didn't say a word, but just cuddled up and increased the intensity of stroking my dick. All through our little chat, she had been stroking my dick, and it was wonderful.

“Pete, what do you really think of my body? Please be honest.”

“Honey, you are perfect. I mean it. Perfect boobs, stunning firm body, beautiful legs, and the most precious pussy I have ever tasted!” Without a word, she turned around and sat herself down on my face.

“Eat me!” she demanded. I was only too happy to oblige. She went down on me as well and even took my head in her mouth. She was stroking wildly as well, and I knew I would not last long. I lifted her a little, and said:

“You better stop, I'm going to blow!” She stopped, and I assumed she didn't want it in her mouth. She ground her musky pussy into my face and as I licked her clit, she came. She moaned and sat quivering for a couple of seconds. Then she got off me, and immediately started kissing me. I was still on my back, and she lifted her leg over me, kissing all the time. Without any warning, she sat down on my dick whilst guiding it into her! She was super-lubricated due to her climax, and the head slipped in.

“Ash! What are you doing?”

“What I have wanted to do since I was twelve!” She looked at me with the same strange look I've been getting all weekend and said:

“You are the person I've been waiting for. I didn't know how to approach you, but this weekend provided the opportunity.” All the time I was acutely aware of her warm pussy around my dick-head. She was so incredibly tight. There was a silence and then she asked:

“Will you do it?” Her beautiful begging face, her wonderful body above me and her warm pussy around my dick prompted me to say:

“I would be honoured… if you are sure about this.”

She didn't answer, but rolled over, taking me with her. What a sight! My beautiful daughter naked on her back, with her legs spread and waiting for me to take her virginity!

I applied lots of lubricant, and slowly pushed at her womanhood. Again, the head slipped in. She closed her eyes, and I started pushing in a little. Then out and in a little deeper. Soon I felt resistance. She was so tight! I stopped going deeper, and got her to relax with the little that was in. She opened her eyes and said:

“Do it!” I pushed hard and broke through. She didn't make a noise, but tears came from her eyes. I kissed her and started to move in and out. Soon she started responding, and then started moving her hips in time with my thrusts. I was only in about five inches, because she was so tight I though I was going to tear her apart. I had to hold back a couple of times, because the whole idea, the actual physical act and the mind-fuck was pushing me over the edge.

“Ash, I want to cum deep inside you!” 

“Yes, yes I want that too”

That was it; I knew I would not last much longer. When we came (yes we climaxed together), I could not control my thrust, and pushed in to the limit. She shouted, cried; bit me all at the same time. When we collapsed, I apologised, but she said:

“There is one way to make this up to me! By the time we have our next sleepover; I want to show those bitches that I can take that whole monster of yours!”

“You mean you want them to know that we are sexually involved” I asked.

“Of course, but only when they are here and they see it! Until then you fuck them silly and I just watch.”

“Are you sure you still want me to be with them”

“Pete, if it is ok with you, I want us to be lovers from now on. I want you to fuck whomever you want, but we stay together! What do you think?”

“You are so special, Ash. Shall we start with you exercises?” She laughed and guided my dick into her slightly bloodied pussy. I think I fucked her five times before she went to school the next day.

She moved into my room that night, and we have been lovers ever since. Her friends come by to “swim” two or three times a week, and we all looked forward to the holiday!

 Any comments/suggestions please

Babysitter Sam

cuzinfred on Virgin Stories



This story is fiction and was written for my friend Sam, I hope everyone enjoys it.







Sam had found a unique way to make money this summer, he had been watching the neighbors’ kids while they worked. I know what’s so unique about babysitting? The answer, Sam was a fifteen year old boy. He mainly only watched two kids, Cindy was eleven and her brother Robert was ten, but on occasions there was also Kory, another eleven year old girl and good friend of Cindy. On this day all three kids were there, Cindy and Kory were watching a Hannah Montana marathon and Robert was playing video games while Sam messed around on his computer. Like any teenage boy he was looking at porn and rubbing his hard cock through his pants. He closed his eyes and leaned back thi
Read More
nking how cute Cindy and Kory are, Cindy with her short light brown hair and hazel eyes and Kory with her pure blonde hair and bright blue eyes. Both girls had just entered puberty and their boobs had just started growing. He moaned as he imagined them standing in front of him topless, their small breasts capped by tiny pink nipples. Sam was a virgin and longed to see a nude female for real and not just pictures on the net. He was shocked back to reality by Robert standing over his shoulder and saying. “WOW, look at the tits on her.”





He quickly clicked off the page and Robert moaned. “Why’d you do that? She was hot.”





Sam looked at Robert and said. “I’m sorry, you weren’t supposed to see that.”





“Why not? I look at that stuff all the time.” Robert said pulling up a chair next to Sam. “Put her back up I want to see more of her.”





Sam didn’t know what to do, he had been caught and if Robert told anyone his ass would be grass. He looked at Robert bouncing around on the chair and clicked the back button bringing the redhead with huge tits back on the screen. “WOW, just look at those.” Robert said looking at Sam. “Can you imagine getting to feel those?” Sam just shook his head as the younger boy stared at the screen.





They clicked from page to page revealing one naked woman after another. Finally Robert grabbed the keyboard and said. “Check this out.” As he typed in the address of a webpage with all types of hardcore images. As they looked at the pictures Sam noticed Robert was rubbing himself through his jeans. When Robert saw him looking he laughed and said. “What? Don’t you play with yourself while you’re looking at this stuff?” He looked at Sam’s lap then added. “Dude, you must be huge. Just look at the size of that bulge. How big is it?”





Sam’s face was bright red as he answered. “Of course I jerk off when I’m alone but I’ve never talked about it with anyone, especially a ten year old. I think maybe we should quit before Cindy or Kory find us. Besides it’s lunch time anyway.” He said as he shut down the computer.





“Oh man, this sucks.” Robert said as he stood up and adjusted the small bulge in his jeans. “I was just getting into it and it was starting to feel really good. Can we look more after lunch? Besides, you didn’t tell me how big you are.”





Sam had to admit the idea of looking at porn with Robert was turning him on, he’d seen gay porn and had wondered what it would be like to mess around with another guy. But did he dare mess around with Robert? What if someone found out? He swallowed hard then said. “Maybe we can look more after lunch and I really don’t know how big it is, I’ve never measured it. But if we do look more you have to promise not to tell anyone, I could get in a lot of trouble.”





“No problem. Now what’s for lunch?” Robert said as he ran up the hall and into the room with the girls, stopping right in front of the TV so they couldn’t see their show.





“ROBERT!!! GET OUT OF THE WAY!! MOVE YOU MORON!” Cindy screamed before pushing him out of the way and down to the floor.





Kory giggled as she watched the brother and sister wrestling in front of her. Then she joined Cindy as they held Robert down and began tickling him. Robert was squealing and squirming when Sam walked into the room. “That’s not really fair you know, both of you picking on poor Robert.” Sam laughed as he watched. He was enjoying the show, as they wrestled both girls’ shirts and shorts had ridden up and he could see their bra straps and panties.





Cindy looked up and said, “Well maybe I should attack you then,” as she grabbed Sam and started tickling him. Sam lost his balance and fell to the floor with Cindy landing on top of him. He could feel her small boobs rubbing against him. He rolled her over and began tickling her causing her to squeal and squirm exposing more of her smooth belly.





As he sat on top of her holding her down, and staring at her well tanned skin, he felt his cock hardening. He knew he had to get off of her but he couldn’t resist letting his hands wander closer to her boobs as he tickled her more. He smiled at her and asked. “Have you had enough?”





Her breathing was rapid and she felt her pussy tingling as his hands brushed agonizingly close to her small boobs. Oh how she wanted him to touch them. She had been dreaming all summer about making out with Sam, he was just sooooo cute. He had a slim muscular build and she had noticed the bulge in his pants, just like now. She wondered what it would be like to touch it and even suck it like she had seen online and to have him touch her. Now she was so close but what should she do now? She squirmed more under his hands then squealed. “Enough, I’ve had enough.” As Sam got off her she scrambled to her feet and kicked him in the butt before grabbing Kory and running down the hall screaming. “Enough for now but I’ll get you.”





“Yeah, we’ll get you.” Kory added before slamming the bathroom door.





“Wow that was fun!” Robert said as he and Sam went into the kitchen. “I swear I could feel their tits rubbing against me, I thought I was gonna explode.”





“Yeah me too, Cindy was rubbing all over me.”





In the bathroom Cindy was saying. “Did you see the lump in Sam’s pants? It was huge, I wanted to just reach out and grab it.”





“Robert was hard too, I could see it twitching as I rubbed against him.”





“Eeeewwwww!! How can you be interested in my little brother? He’s so gross.”





“Well I think he’s cute and you would too if he wasn’t your brother. Besides I remember you telling me how you watched him jerk off that time.”





“I guess you’re right he is kinda cute and I only watched him for a couple of minutes.” Cindy giggled as she slapped Kory’s cute ass. “Hey let’s screw with them some more.”





“What do you have in mind?” Kory answered slapping Cindy’s ass in return.





“Let’s take our bras off so maybe they can get a little peek.”





They both giggled as they watched the other lift their top over their head then remove their bra revealing their small budding boobs. Cindy reached up and squeezed hers, moaning as she rolled the hard tiny nipples between her fingers. Kory felt her pussy twitch as she did the same.





While they ate their lunch Sam could swear he could see their tiny nipples poking against their shirts but he assumed he was just imagining it since he was so horny from the earlier playing. After lunch the girls made a point of bending over in front of the guys and Robert almost choked when he saw Kory’s small pale boobs for the first time. Sam was getting the same view down Cindy’s top and his cock was so hard it was painful as it throbbed and jerked trying to break free. Cindy noticed it twitching and licked her lips. Their eyes locked and she leaned forward and kissed him. They both moaned as their tongues wrestled back and forth, this was so much better than when Shelby had showed her and Kory how to kiss at that sleepover a few months before, not that they hadn’t had fun that night and many times since. Sam suddenly pushed her away and said. “We shouldn’t do this Cindy.”





She whispered. “Why not, don’t you like it?”





“Oh yeah it’s great but I’m supposed to be watching you not making out with you. What if anyone finds out?” He moaned, his cock jerking violently as her hand rubbed his chest.





“Nobody’s gonna find out. We’re not hurting anyone, we’re just having some fun. Besides, I don’t think we can stop them.” She laughed as she pointed to Robert and Kory. Robert had Kory pressed against the couch kissing her passionately while his hand was under her top squeezing her small boob.





Sam pulled Cindy back to him kissing her hard as his hand slid under her shirt, sending a shiver through her as it slid over her firm stomach and up to her waiting breast. She moaned into his mouth when his hand cupped her boob and the hard nipple rubbed against his palm. Her hand had slid down his chest and onto the hard lump in his crotch. She could feel his pulse through her hand as she squeezed and rubbed his hard cock through his jeans.





She broke the kiss when she sat back and lifted her top over her head, revealing small mounds that were her just developing boobs to him. She cupped them in her hands, pushing them together smiling as she said. “Oh Sam I hope you like my boobs, I’ve wanted you to see them and touch them all summer.”





“They’re beautiful Cindy.” He said as he leaned forward taking most of her left breast in his mouth. She arched her back and pulled his face tight against her chest while his tongue circled the tiny pebble of her nipple. He slid his hand down her stomach and she spread her legs giving him free access to her crotch. He rubbed the crotch of her shorts causing her to gasp and her hips to lift off the couch.





Cindy heard a loud groan and she looked over to see what Kory and Robert were doing. She was shocked to see Robert sitting back his eyes closed and his mouth open, obviously enjoying every moment, while Kory ran her hand up and down his hard cock. He was moaning loudly and his hips were lifting off the couch as he fucked his smooth, hairless, three inch cock into her fist. She was even more stunned when she saw Kory slide off the couch onto her knees between Robert’s legs and slide her mouth over his hard cock, not stopping till her nose was pressed into his crotch.





“OH WOW KORY THAT FEELS GREAT!!! OH YEAH SUCK IT!!!” Robert groaned, holding her head while he fucked her face.





Cindy felt a bit of jealousy as she watched her best friend sucking her little brother’s cock, she hated to admit it but she had wanted to do that since she watched him jerking off a month ago. She was wondering what it tasted like and how it felt till she was brought back to reality by Sam sliding her shorts and panties down her legs and his hand touching her bare pussy. He ran his hand just above her slit, feeling the few wispy hairs that had just recently sprouted, then over the wet puffy lips. Her hips jerked when his hand brushed her swollen clit, only she had touched that spot before. Sam wasn’t really sure what he was doing but he had seen enough porn online that he moved between her legs and ran his tongue over her smooth virgin slit. Wow, he thought, this tastes pretty good as he buried his tongue in her slit, sliding it between her lips.





“OH GOD SAM I”VE NEVER FELT ANYTHING LIKE THAT.” Cindy moaned as she was grinding her pussy against his face. She was running her fingers through his short blonde hair pulling his face to her crotch.





Robert heard his sister and looked over to see Sam kneeling on the floor with Cindy’s legs over his shoulders, her ass humping as she obviously enjoyed Sam eating her pussy. The combination of watching his sister and Kory’s hot mouth on his young dick was more than he could stand and his legs stiffened and he squealed. “OH MAN I’M CUMMING!!!!!” His hips lifted off the couch a final time and his tiny balls contracted as a small stream of clear fluid squirted from his cock and into Kory’s mouth. Kory wasn’t sure what to do, everything she had seen online the guy had always pulled out and cum on the girls face or body, but she kind of liked the taste and she definitely liked the way it felt when his cock jerked against her tongue so she just held her mouth on his cock till he quit shaking. When she lifted her mouth from his cock a shiver went through her body as she swallowed and felt his cum sliding down her throat. She smiled at him then licked her lips and said “MMMMMMMM.”





Cindy watched Robert cumming in Kory’s mouth and she could feel her own orgasm getting closer as Sam’s tongue circled her tiny clit. He used his fingers to open her lips so his tongue could slide deeper into her tiny hole, scooping up more of the sweet nectar he craved. He felt her legs gripping his head tighter as he licked up her slit and back down again. She was moaning loud and was getting louder with every flick of his tongue. Robert slid his finger along Kory’s slit while they watched Sam bringing Cindy closer to orgasm. “Eat her Sam, make her cum.” Robert said rubbing Kory’s pussy faster. “Does it feel good sis? You like Sam eating you?”





“Oh Robert, SHUT UP!” Cindy groaned bringing her left hand to her chest and rolling a nipple between her fingers. “OH YES THAT’S IT!!! OH YES SAM DON’T STOP!! OH IT’S HAPPENING!!!! YYYYYEEEEEEESSSSSSSSSS!!!!” Her body stiffened and she couldn’t breathe as the most wonderful and most intense feeling she had ever experienced raced through her body. Kory leaned over her friend and kissed her, their tongues intertwined as Cindy’s orgasm subsided.





Cindy lay there exhausted while Sam stood up and removed his jeans, everyone watched as he slid his underwear down revealing a beautiful thick uncut seven and a half inch cock standing proudly from a dark thick bush. “WOW DUDE!!” Robert gasped. “That’s huge!” Of course it really wasn’t huge but to ten and eleven year olds it was. All three of the kids sat in front of Sam and watched as he slid the foreskin back revealing the red head that glistened with a drop of precum.





“It’s even better than I had imagined.” Cindy said as she reached out for it, her small hand wouldn’t reach around it. She wondered how something this big would ever fit in her. The same thing was running through Kory’s mind as her hand joined Cindy’s. Even with both of the girl’s hands wrapped around his cock, a couple of inches were visible.





Robert shocked everyone when he cupped Sam’s balls and said. “Man these are huge too, you must have a gallon of cum in them.”





“ROBERT, what the hell are you doing?” Cindy gasped watching her little brother play with Sam’s balls.





“”It’s all right Cindy.” Sam moaned. “We’re all friends here and anybody can do anything they want.” Sam loved having three people playing with him the fact they were so young and one was a boy just added to the pleasure.





He moaned as Cindy leaned forward and licked a drop of precum from the head. She looked up at him licking her lips and said “mmmmmmmmmm.” She opened her mouth and slid her lips over the head then farther down the shaft till it hit the back of her throat causing her to gag. As she sat there coughing Kory, not wanting to miss an opportunity, slid her lips over Sam’s hard cock. She moaned as her head moved back and forth on and her tongue licked the underside of his cock. Cindy saw Kory sucking Sam’s hard cock and punched her side and said. “Hey that’s mine, you already sucked Robert off.”





Sam laughed. “It’s ok girls, you can share.”





He thought he had died and gone to heaven as he sat on the couch between two gorgeous, naked, eleven year old girls, each wanting to suck his cock. Each girl was on her knees on the couch, Cindy on his left and Kory on his right, their cute asses sticking up and the perfect place to rest his hands. The girls leaned forward and each ran her tongue around and over the head before Cindy took him back in her mouth again. He groaned as she sucked him and Kory licked his shaft. His hands were busy rubbing and squeezing their cute asses then he slid his fingers over their smooth pussy lips. Both girls moaned and Cindy pulled her mouth from his cock to catch her breath and Kory quickly took her place, her wet mouth sliding down the shaft and then her tongue dancing over the head. Sam had forgotten about Robert till he felt a warm mouth cover one of his balls, he looked down to see Robert sucking his balls. The pleasure was so intense as the three kids pleasured him and he knew he would be cumming soon. He slipped a finger into each of the girls’ tiny pussies, amazed at how wet, tight and hot they were, it was almost like they were sucking his fingers deeper.





Both girls moaned as Sam’s fingers slid in and out of their preteen slits, the vibration from their moans sending even more pleasure through his young cock. He could feel his balls tightening and his cum start its journey up his cock. He groaned and lifted his hips trying to drive more of his raging hard on into Cindy’s mouth just as the first huge shot of hot cum filled her mouth, catching her off guard. She coughed and gagged as she pulled her mouth from his jerking cock, trying to catch her breath, only to be quickly replaced by Kory’s. The small load of boy cum she had sucked from Robert’s cock had only wet her appetite and she wanted more, but even she was surprised by the huge amount of cum Sam was pumping into her mouth. She swallowed all she could but cum was leaking out of her lips and running down Sam’s throbbing shaft. Robert licked along Sam’s shaft slurping the cum up, his own cock was hard and throbbing as he savored the flavor of Sam’s cum. Cindy had caught her breath and was ready for another taste so Kory grudgingly let her slide her lips back over Sam’s cockhead so she could get the last few drops of sweet cum. Cindy pulled Kory to her and kissed her passionately, each tasting Sam’s cum on the other’s tongue. Robert stroked Sam’s cock, bringing one last drop of cum out which he quickly licked up. “Wow your cum tastes great.” He moaned licking his lips and looking up at Sam.





“Jeeze Robert, are you gay?” Cindy asked. “Why are you licking his balls and eating his cum? That’s weird.”





“I’m not gay I just like guys and girls.” Robert answered. “And it’s no weirder than you and Kory kissing each other and fucking each other with toothbrushes like you did last week.” After he said it he put his hand over his mouth as he realized he had just admitted spying on them.





“How do you know, I mean what are you talking about? Kory and I didn’t do anything. You little perv you were spying on us, I should beat the snot out of you.” Cindy grumbled.





“Now everybody calm down. We just had a great time and we can have more, if everybody wants to.” Sam said trying to get everybody’s attention back to sex, his cock was still hard and he wanted to fuck one if not both of the girls before his mom got home.





“Yea, what difference does it make if he watched us?” Kory added as she rubbed her pussy. “I’m horny and I want to feel a dick in me.”





“You’re right.” Cindy laughed as she lay back on the couch spreading her legs wide. “Come on Sam, put that big cock where it belongs and do it to me.”





Sam moved between her legs and rubbed his cock head up and down her slit trying to find the opening. When he felt it start to enter her he looked down at her and asked. “Are you sure about this?”





Cindy felt her pussy opening around his cock and she was dying to feel it inside her, it was much thicker than the toothbrush handle she and Kory had used to break their cherries and those had felt great so this would have to be wonderful. Her hands were on his hips and she pulled him toward her as she said. “Yes I’m sure I want you to FUCK ME!!”





Sam was shocked at her language and he was shaking as he pushed and his cock was wrapped in the tight glove of her pussy. The blowjob he had just received had been great but it didn’t compare to this. Kory and Robert watched as Cindy’s pussy was stretched tight around Sam’s cock and they could see her juices glistening on it as he pulled back before sliding it in again. “OH SAM, IT’S SO BIG AND IT FEELS SO GOOD!!!”





Kory couldn’t stand it any more and she pushed Robert onto the floor and straddled him reaching down and lining his small cock up with her pussy as she settled onto it. Robert moaned as he felt a pussy on his cock for the first time. His cock was a little thicker than the toothbrush handle and Kory moaned as she bounced up and down on it, she really wanted Sam’s cock stretching her like he was Cindy but this was still good. She was the only one who hadn’t cum yet and she needed to very badly. Her pussy juice was running down his balls and over his asshole as he thrust up to meet her, his hands were on her small boobs and he rolled her nipples between his fingers. That was all it took and her body went stiff and she squealed as her orgasm rocked her body. “OH MY GOD!!!! YYYYYEEEEEEEESSSSSSSS!!!!”





Sam looked over and saw Kory cumming and he started fucking Cindy harder. His balls were slapping against her ass as his cock slid in and out of her wet pussy. He could feel another orgasm building in his balls as he listened to Kory scream and Cindy moaning with every thrust. Her pussy was gripping him like a vacuum, sucking the cum from his balls.





Kory collapsed rolling off of Robert lying on her back catching her breath. Robert’s cock jerked and moved closer to Sam and Cindy so he could watch Sam’s cock stretching his sister’s pussy. He was close to cumming again and his hand slid up and down his slick shaft. Cindy noticed her little brother stroking himself and she pulled him onto the couch and slid her mouth over his cock. “Oh yea sis, suck me.” Robert moaned getting everyone’s attention. Sam fucked Cindy faster as he watched her sucking her brother and Kory moved closer so she could watch.





“That’s the hottest thing I’ve seen.” Kory said. “Suck his cock Cindy, suck your brother’s cock. Make him cum in your mouth. You know you want it.”





Kory was right Cindy did want to taste Robert’s cum and she moved her mouth up and down his shaft quickly trying to get him to cum. Sam’s cock was filling her pussy with every stroke and she was so close to having the most mind shattering orgasm of her life. She felt Robert fucking her face faster and she could feel his cock swelling then he groaned. “OH CINDY I’M CUMMING!!!” His cock jerked as four spurts of his young cum shot across her tongue filling her mouth. She didn’t swallow, she wanted to savor the flavor. Robert pulled his cock from her mouth and kissed her, he loved the taste of his own cum and the fact that it was in his big sister’s mouth made it that much better.





Sam watched Cindy and Robert sharing cum and that sent him over the edge. He grabbed Cindy’s hips and slammed into her, holding his cock deep inside her as he pumped his load in her young cunt. “OH FUCK, I’M CUMMING TOO!!” Cindy squealed into Robert’s mouth as she felt the first hot cum ever to fill her pussy and her pussy spasmed and squeezed his cock, milking all the cum from him, as her powerful orgasm raced through her body.





Sam slowly pulled his softening cock from Cindy’s well fucked pussy and saw his cum begin to ooze from her slit. After having Robert lick the cum from his cock and balls earlier and then seeing Robert and Cindy sharing Robert’s cum he had a strong desire to taste some cum too. He leaned between Cindy’s legs and ran his tongue along her slit. He loved the salty taste and he buried his face in her crotch sucking all his cum from her causing her to writhe and moan as another small orgasm washed over her. As he lifted his head and wiped his chin he noticed the time, they had to get dressed his mom would be home soon. Luckily tomorrow was another work day for their parents and they could start early in the morning. That is if Cindy and Robert didn’t wear each other out tonight.







Any comments are appreciated at just.me191@hotmail.com.

Summer With My Cousin

dmctalker on Incest Stories

My name is David Carter. I was 12 when I first started going to my Aunt and Uncle’s house for a couple of weeks during the summer. I would go there each summer as a sort of vacation. I would get to spend time with my Aunt and Uncle, and my five cousins too. I was older than all my cousins, so obviously they all looked up to me as an older brother. My two oldest cousins, Dallas and Alex, were two and three years behind me in age, respectively. The three of us spent the most time together since we all were the closest in age, and the younger ones would mostly do their own thing. I always viewed Dallas and Alex as though they were sisters and with that, I never really thought much about their attractiveness, that is, until the summer I went to visit when I was 17.

 

I hadn’t

my ittle friend 2

perv4lilgrls on Taboo Stories

          Penny just smiled at me as I grabbed her hand and led her to the bathroom. There was cum hardening in her hair, on her eyelashes and in her ears. I could not remember ever cumming so hard or so much in my life, even with my little girls. Oh I had forgot to mention that I had been doing my two stepdaughters since they were very young also, but that is for another time.
 
          As we turned to go into the shower, I let her take the lead. What a cute little ass she has, so tight and round. I could feel my cock starting to respond to the sight.
 
  &
Read More
nbsp;       “ Wait a little before we jump in so the water can warm up a bit. “ as I turned the water on. She looked up at me and smiled.
 
          “ I see you are getting happy again Peter. “ She was looking back and forth between my cock and me.
 
          “ You seem quite interested in my cock for such a little girl. You can get into the shower while I go put the clothes in the dryer. “
 
          As I turned to go to the laundryroom, I glanced back watching her step into the shower. Her ass was going to be a prize when she matured and got her full form. The roundness and firmness was unbelievable. My cock wanted to make it a new home or just a temporary parking garage.
 
          My monster was sprouting again as I got to the laundryroom and placed the clothed in the dryer. I was thinking of what I was going to do with my newfound toy. I love getting them when they are new and fresh with no training or knowledge. It makes life so much easier in the lessons and control of their abilities.
 
          I got back to the shower to find Penny trying to clean herself off. She wasn’t doing a very good job, so as I walked in I told her I would do that for her. She just turned and smiled while stretching her arm out with the soapy puff in her hand. I reached and picked it from her grip. The water was bouncing off her body, making it shine. Her skin was so soft, satin was rough compared to it.
 
          I asked her to lean back against the wall as I knelt down in front of her and started my little cleaning job. I gently started rubbing along her Nubian budding chest. Her nipples were standing tall, well as tall as could be expected for her young breasts. I could tell just by looking that they were going to be spectacular when she matured. Her areolas were quite large for her age, which only told me good things were coming.
 
          I continued wiping her shoulders, sides and was moving toward her lovely little pussy. I looked into her eyes and she just gave me a smile as she closed her eyes again and let me proceed with my bathing.
 
          Her thighs were sssooo soft !!!!!!!!! As I wiped down her thighs I slid my finger across her pussy lips and on to her clit to see her reaction. She let out a slow, soft, gentle moan as I rotated upon her little nub.
 
          “ You like the way that feels, huh Penny ?
 
          Softly she replies, “ Oh it feels so nice Peter, but at the same time it kinda tickles. “
 
          “ Yes I know baby, but that is only because of your age. Soon enough that tickle will take on a completely different meaning. “ She let out some louder moans as I slid my finger into her waiting pussy.
 
          Her pussy was so velvety the precum started to ooze from my cock as I was in a different world with my finger in this virgin hole. She was going to be very tight for me, but I didn’t care. I pulled out and went back to her clit and she squealed.
 
          I looked into her eyes and asked, “ Are you okay Penny ? “
 
          “ OH MY GOD PETER !!!!! WHAT ARE YOU DOING TO ME ? I HAVE NEVER FELT ANYTHING LIKE THIS BEFORE. “
 
          I was rotating on her clit with my thumb while pushing a finger into her pussy. Her head was rocking side to side and the moans were becoming louder and louder. She was trying to spread her legs farther, her hands were slapping against the wall. My cock was pulsing as I was going to give her the magic orgasm, her first. Every man knows when he is the first to give a girl or woman her first orgasm, he has them for life. There is never anything to compare with their first.
 
          She is convulsing and trembling as I put a hand on the back of her head. I take my other arm and grab her and hold her in a hug as she pulsates through my body. Her squeals are now screams that slowly get softer and quieter as she collapses in my arms and just becomes dead weight against my body.
 
          Her tiny body still has a few convulsions, as it appears she has passed out. I just hold her as the water pours down upon us. I know she is completely unaware of her jerking body. About a minute later she comes back around and tries to lift her head.
 
          “ What happened to me Peter ? I have never felt like that ever in my life. “
 
          “ Did you like the feeling ? “
 
          “ My head is sort of woozy. Can I sit down ? “
 
          I help her move to the little seat in the shower. I gently place her down carefully watching so she doesn’t slip or collapse again.
 
          “ That is a feeling I want to give you every time I see you. You just had what is called an orgasm. Commonly known as cumming. “
 
          “ My mommy has used that word ‘ cummin ? ‘ some times when I have watched your play with her cock. “
 
          As she was babbling I reached down to her pussy and scooped up a sample of her virgin nectar. The aroma was intoxicating. The flavor was divine. I slid my fingers into my mouth and sucked and savored her juices until my skin was ready to come off.
 
          “ Would you like a taste Penny ? “
 
          She just looked at me with her glazed eyes, oblivious to anything.
 
          “ Would you like to taste your cum like you tasted mine earlier ? “
 
          She just slightly nodded as I slid my fingers down for some more and brought them to her mouth. Weakly she opened and I gently slid them in, she sucked and with impressive force.  This girl was going to be a major cocksucker.
 
          “ It tastes very good, doesn’t it ? “
 
          She just nodded her head.
          My cock was now bouncing. It was ready for some action and it wanted it now. I lifted Penny slightly and placed her on the shower floor. I grabbed a towel and put it under her head. Wet or dry it still was better than smacking her head into the tiles. That’s right you know where this animal is going. I spread her legs wide. Her little pussy was going to be a challenge, but I was going to concur it.
 
          Penny was just floating in never-never-land. My cock was aching from the strain of all my blood trying to bust out of my cock. The pressure was amazing.
 
          “ Now Penny this is going to hurt. It may hurt for quite a while, but it will eventually begin to feel very good and make you feel just like you did before. “
 
          She just kinda nodded and looked up briefly, before closing her eyes again and drifting off.
 
          I moved into position. My bulbous head pointing at my treasure. I slowly slid my head up and down her puffy lips. They were silky smooth rubbing on my head. I was afraid it would be over before it got started. It is very hard to try and explain the feeling I am talking of, unless you have actually been there and experienced it. It will make your head swirl. The shower water was bouncing off my back and causing a slight mist to fall over Penny.
 
          I pushed slightly inward with my head. There was resistance as I spread her virgin lips with my head. I just wiggled to where the opening of my treasure was and let it sit there for a few seconds. I could feel the precum oozing from my head and lubing up my conquest. I pulled back out and spread some cum over her lips and clit. The moment I touched her clit, her body bounced and she opened her eyes looking at me with a smile that just said PLEASE.
 
          With this look of acceptance, I put my cock back in position and whispered in her ear, “ Get ready baby because it is going to hurt. “
 
          She whispered back in my ear, “ Please I want it and I want it now. “
 
          I put a foot in each hand and lifted her legs, while spreading them as far as I could in the shower. My cock in position I slid it in and out of her lips maybe an inch or so. She started to moan and make gurgling noises. Suddenly without warning I backed up a bit and slammed my monster straight into this virgin clamp.
 
          Penny let out a scream that pierced my eardrums. I just let my self sit in place not moving with just four inches impaled into my new victim. Penny tried to fight and kept screaming.
 
          “ Relax, relax, relax. “ I kept saying it over and over. “ It will be alright my love, just relax. “
 
          The tears were just flowing from her eyes. Those big beautiful green eyes had a look of terror in them. I released her legs and leaned down to hold her as best I could.
 
          “ Just relax Penny. The pain will subside soon. Just try to relax. It will be all right. “ I whispered in her ear as I hugged her. I suckled on her neck and nibbled a little on her earlobe.
 
          This seemed to be having a little bit of an effect on her. I could feel her pussy just squeezing so tight around my cock. I must have her stretched so far apart she may be tearing. I raised my self up on my hands and glanced down to see if she was ripping apart. My cock was filling my little toy as much as it could, it was such a tight fit there was no leakage of blood from me tearing her cherry apart.
 
          I bent down and gave her a kiss on the lips. She instinctively opened her mouth and pushed her tongue out.
          “ Penny when you go to french kiss me, don’t just stick your tongue out and ram it in my mouth. You need to learn and enjoy the sensation of our tongues dancing together. “
 
          Suddenly I moved my cock just a fraction and Penny clamped down on my tongue and lips with her teeth causing me to jerk back, almost tearing my tongue off in her mouth.
 
          “ OUCH !!!!! What the hell did you do that for ? “
 
          “ I am so sorry Peter. I didn’t mean it. It’s just when you moved your cock, the sudden flash of pain caused me to just instinctively bite down. “
 
          Tears flowing from her eyes, I looked at her and said, “ Well it is going to hurt a lot more if you don’t relax. “
 
          With that I slowly started to pull back with my cock. My god she was SSSOOO FUCKING TIGHT !!!! I could feel her inner and outer lips peeling back with my cock. I looked down and saw her lips attached to my cock like a leach. Slowly I pulled back.
 
          “ OH MY FUCKING GOD THAT HURTS SO MUCH !!!! “ she screamed
 
          “ Get ready Penny it is going to hurt much more before it gets better. “
 
          As I pushed back in slowly, I pulled back out slowly and pushed back in slowly. I was only getting about a three-inch range with my cock as I went back and forth. She just kept squealing and screaming about the pain. The tears kept coming. I continued to rock to and fro.
 
          I did this for about five minutes, just sliding in and out ever so slowly. I could feel her juices starting to pour from her pussy. I looked down and could see the mixture of blood and pussy juices swirling down toward the drain. Her noises were becoming softer now with an occasional moan between grimaces. I moved my one hand on to her newly developing breast and nipple. I gave the nipple a pinch and pull. Her mouth opened and let out a loud moan.
 
          Her breasts were just starting to take shape and you could see they were going to be magnificent when she got older. The only thing that disappointed me was the nipples didn’t seem to be the kind that was going to be very large.
 
          As I molested her tits, I kept pumping her pussy. Any sign of discomfort was now replaced by moans and groans. She was slowly trying to get her hips to move up and down, but my cock and body weight made it very hard for her.
 
          With my other hand I grabbed her leg and pushed it back toward her ear. Trying to open her hole even more. She squeaked with a little grimace as I mashed her toes into the wall. Things were starting to happen quite quickly now.
 
          My strokes were getting a little quicker and she was getting moister. Suddenly she started to convulse again. Pulsating like a leaf in a hurricane. She was in a constant state of orgasm. My cock was moving a little more freely now and I needed more. I took my cock and pushed deep as I could into her pussy. I instantly hit her cervix, womb and anything else left back there. She let out an ear-piercing scream and then fell silent. The mixture of her orgasms and the pain from my drive were too much for her, she had passed out.
 
          Now the true animal took over in me. Even though I would miss the moans and screams, I had no resistance to continue my carnal conquest. I moved my hands down and grabbed hold of her ass cheeks. Squeezing and lifting them as I began to take long strokes with my cock and bash the insides of my little friend. I was only getting five inches in, but it was okay. The head of my cock started to hurt from smashing into the opening of her womb. I didn’t want to drive it through just yet.
 
          As I continued my assault I felt the pressure building in my balls as they began to tighten and the tingle was racing through my cock. Suddenly before I knew it my cum was spraying everywhere. The pressure was so great, that even with the super seal I had from my cock in this tiny, tight pussy my cum was spraying back at me, all over my belly, my inner thighs. All over Penny’s thighs legs and belly. I was cumming with so much force I must have filled her womb with just the first blast. I was having trouble holding myself above her. The cum just kept coming and coming. Finally I had to fall to the side I was becoming so weak. As I did my cock popped free from its sheath with a sound only heard on the fourth of July. I laid there just trying to catch my breath as the water was now spraying on both of us. This of course woke Penny from her state. She didn’t jump or startle as she woke. She was too weak to really move. I could see her look in my direction, eyes all blurry trying to get the words out.
 
          “ Peter my pussy hurts real bad. “
 
          “ I know baby, when we get our strength back I will help take care of it. “
 
          She reached over with her hand to grab mine. I held her hand and with my other I gently stroked her hair and face. She put a grin on her face, but I knew she was in pain. I had ravaged her and now must help her recover. We stayed there for a few more minutes, then I got up and turned the water off. I helped her up, she could barely stand. I sat her back down on the little bench and turned to get a towel.
 
          I took the towel and gently started to dry her off. First with the head and hair, then the shoulders and chest, the back and then had her lean on me so I could get her legs and ass. Oh the feel of her ass through the towel was just mind-boggling. For a little girl she had a lovely ass and it felt as great as it looked. When I finished I set the towel on the bench and set her there as well. I went and dried myself off.
 
          I picked Penny up in my arms and carried her to my bed. I laid her down on top of my comforter; she looked up and tried to give me a smile.
 
          “ I bet you could use a drink ? “
 
          She just nodded her head with a slight smirk.
 
          “ I’ll be right back, don’t runaway. “
 
          She just chuckled slightly as I left for the kitchen.
 
          I got her a glass of juice and grabbed a couple of my pain pills.
 
          “ Here Penny, drink this and take one of these. It will help with the pain and make you feel better. “
 
          She grabbed the glass and pill and swallowed it with her chaser. She took several more gulps and you could see the little grimace on her face from the taste of the medication.
 
          “ Just lie here for a bit while I go check the clothes. “
 
          I placed the glass on the nightstand and darted to the laundryroom.
          When I got back there was Penny, curled in the fetal position and sleeping soundly. I placed the clothes on the corner of the bed, covered her with a spare blanket and closed the door as I left to go watch some tv………………………………………………………………………………………………………………..
 
 
          Any questions, comments or inquiries direct them to …. lilgrrlperv@yahoo.com

Daughter's First Time Sex With Her Daddy!

CMatthews on Incest Stories

My Daughter's First Time Having Sex with her Daddy!

Short Story by Carolyn Matthews.



It is a beautiful Sunday morning, and I have just taken a long hot shower to prepare myself for the day. I wrap a towel around my naked body, then head downstairs to make a pot of coffee for the family. When I reach the bottom of the steps, I am shocked by what I see! My husband and my daughter Amber are sitt

My Little Sister Makes Me Impregnate Her

oldbondsie on Incest Stories

It was a pretty normal Saturday morning.  I was home for my spring break from college and was pretty bored.  Most of my friends, both from college and ones I was still in touch with from high school either had managed to find a better place to be for break or had spring breaks that did not sync up with mine.  I'm Geoff, I'm an eighteen year-old college first-year.  I was adopted as a child due to an abusive and neglectful single-mother into a family with two other children, a now twenty-two year old brother named Eric and a currently sixteen year-old sister, Kylie. 

Eric had dropped out of college due to neglecting his classes and schoolwork two years ago and was in his first tour of Iraq.  

Kylie was a junior in high school.  I had always

Read More
gotten along very well with her, even when we were kids.  In fact, we had gotten along well enough that many people, including Eric, questioned our behavior.  It's true, we were perhaps "too" comfortable with one another.  Whenever Kylie had tension in her back, she came to me for a backrub - to help with the effectiveness of the massage, she would usually remove her top while I did the work.  Our family had a veranda on the second floor and we also would often tan together, me in track shorts and her in a bikini.  There was of course other questionable behavior as well, such as putting sun tan lotion on one another without shying away from certain areas and advising one another on swim suit and underwear shopping, and we also said "I love you" to each other more than a normal brother and sister would. 

Despite all this behavior, I had never been sexually attracted to Kylie.  She was fucking gorgeous of course, my parents had apparently had the genes to produce those two gorgeous children that the whole town stares at.  Eric was 6'2" with the V-body shape, a rugged face, etc.  Kylie was the female equivalent, 5'5", slender toned legs, perfectly-cut ass, blond, a face that could melt even my father, C breasts and incredible golden skin.  And so even with this incredible appearance, of course, I hadn't ever thought about Kylie in a sexual way, after all, I had been adopted at a young age, so I considered her my sister as much as a girl biologically related to me.

As I found out on this morning, she didn't feel the same way.  I couldn't blame her, I was pretty good-looking.  I guess I'm what people would describe as a "pretty-boy."  I'm 5'9" with dark auburn hair that falls down in a shaggy but well-kempt way that contributes most of my label as a pretty boy.  I have a semi-athletic build with great abs, pecs, and arms, but nothing that would be on a magazine cover.  I also had eyes that I'd used to melt high school girls, college girls, and even teachers to go along with a smile that could invent a term called something like "smile-fucking"  It was just teasing and seductive.

Anyways, that Saturday morning I woke up around 9 and went downstairs to make myself some coffee, wearing just my pajama pants with my cock semi-hard from an arousing dream.  I strolled into the kitchen and found my pretty little sister standing there in her robe with her regular glass of orange juice, and a toasted bagel, talking on the phone.  She smiled and jumped forward to hug me as I walked in.  I embraced her tightly.  College was amazing, but of course, I did miss my little sister, I worried about her being lonely.  She was beautiful, but didn't really have the attitude of one of the "popular" girls.  Guys always hit on her and she didn't really know how to react, so they often gave up on her and went to someone easier, although less attractive.  I got my sister though, I understood her, so did her one ex boyfriend.  Just one, somehow.  Anyways, I'm pretty sure she felt that I was semi-hard when she hugged me because she jumped a bit when it brushed against lower stomach.  

I was a bit embarrassed but we had walked in on one another masturbating before, and were very touchy with each other so obviously it wasn't the first time this sort of thing had happened.  I smiled and kissed her on the forehead, as any brother would do to such an adorable little sister, before pouring myself my coffee.  I walked back upstairs and sat down at my laptop, checking facebook to see if my girlfriend had replied to my message about how much I missed her.  I checked my e-mail and the box scores from the night before as well before turning on the TV to sportscenter.  I guess I would've loved to be in Florida for break, but relaxing like this wasn't bad either.  

About 10 minutes later, Kylie burst in, throwing herself at me, cuddling against me.  "I miss you, bro!"  

I hugged her close.  Cuddling like this was another thing that many people might disapprove of when it comes to our behavior, it got to be pretty sexual at times, with my hands roaming down her lower back, her hands across my chest, and her legs across me.  "I miss you too, Kylie!  When are you going to visit me up there?" 

"Mom doesn't want me to, but I think dad will let me if I ask him when she's not around.  I miss you all the time, Geoff!"  she said, clinging to me.  Suddenly, I realized she had tears streaming down her face.

"Kylie!  What happened?  I've been gone the whole year already, don't cry!  You didn't cry over fall or winter break!  Or Thanksgiving!"  

"Yes, I did.  You just didn't see..." she sobbed into my shoulder.  

I pulled on her hips so that she wound up on top of me, straddling me.  I held her head between my hands and wiped her tears away.  "Kylie, come on.  I'm only a couple hours away.  You can call me anytime and I check facebook a couple times a day.  If you ever really needed me I could take a bus down and be here before the end of the day.  I'm still your brother, I'm still always here for you, I still love you."  I said, stroking her hair.

"I love you, Geoff," she said, her eyes drying and her cute smile returning.  With that, she ambushed me, tickling my sides while sitting on top of me, thrilled at her mischieviousness.  I bucked and pushed her off of me.  "Oh you're in so much trouble now, sis!" I shouted as I grabbed her and started tickling her sides right back.  She tried to push me away but I pinned her against the wall, holding her wrists in one of my hands.  She screeched and writhed, until eventually she kicked me in the stomach, hard.  

I staggered backwards onto my back, coughing.  "What teh FUCK, Kylie?" I shouted, through my wheezing.

"I'm sorry! I told you to stop!" she exclaimed, "Are you ok?"  She put herh and to my bare stomach, does it hurt when I touch it?  

"No, it just hurts period," I growled, regaining my breath.  

"I'm sorry, Geoff!"  she said, rubbing my stomach.  

"It's ok, Kylie," i said, forcing a smile, knowing she felt terrible.  She continued to rub my abs, but sensually.  

"It's ok," I repeated, wondering why she was still touching me.  She moved her hand up from my abs to my chiseled pecs, looking me in the eyes with a look that I'd seen from her at times before. 

"What are you doing, Kylie?" I asked.  "I think you should stop," I added as she straddled me again, running both hands over my chest.  "Come on, Kylie, this doesn't even tickle," I said, in denial.

She bent over, laying a huge kiss on me, probing her tongue into my mouth wildly, looking for mine.

I pushed her away abruptly, "What the fuck, Kylie?" I demanded. 

"Oh, come on, Geoff!  You know you want this! We both do! I want it so bad!" she shouted back at me, starting to girate her hips against my crotch.  

"Get off, Kylie, we can't do this.  Cuddling, being playful is one thing..." I started before she interrupted me with another kiss.  I let her go at it for a split second longer before pushing her away this time.  But she wasn't itnerested in that.  She dove right back in, grabbing the back of my head with both hands and holding me to her.  I tried to push her away by her shoulders but she had managed to wrap her amazing legs around me and was holding on for dear life, exploring the deepest parts of my mouth and throat with her tongue, moaning and slurping wildly. 

Even against my own instincts, I had started to become aroused.  I tried to push her away again but with my vision impaired by her face and hair, inadvertently ended up feeling her breasts.  She moaned loudly, humping me.  I knew this was wrong, but it felt so good.  She was getting me very hard, and she could tell.  She was holding on for dear life with her legs, arms and hands.  She pulled away from the kiss and started licking my neck and chest wildly, she had gone crazy.  I knew my sister had the potential to be a total slut, but I also knew she wasn't, yet here she was acting like it.

By now, my guard was basically down, I was into it, I was aroused, and ten years of memories of us flirting had run through my mind, realizing that this was inevitable.  But I thought of my girlfriend who I loved with all my heart, I couldn't do this, I can't cheat on her, let alone with my sister. 

As if reading my thoughts, Kylie blirted out "Don't worry about her, this will be our secret," she moaned before kissing me again.  This time I returned her tongue motions, an action which drove her wild, she knew that she had won me over.  She pulled away abruptly, peeling off her tank top and grinning at my reaction.  Her tits were perfect, large but not too big, perfectly proportioned and firm, tan like the rest of her.  I reached up, grabbing them widlly, attacking them.  I yanked her bra down, sucking on her nipples, rubbing her tits, slurping all over her.  She screeched in pleasure, unhooking her bra and letting it fall off.  I started to return her dry-humping motions, she moaned loudly, feeling my now rock-hard member crashing through two layers of fabric against the outside of her vagina.  I felt her up wildly, and made out with her for a couple minutes, dry humping and sucking her tits until she started to moan like crazy, moans that turned into screams as I felt her shake and climax.  

I pushed her away for a moment.  "You had better not fucking say you can't do this now," she said sternly.  

"Kylie, you're my sister..." I started.

"You're fucking adopted!" she shouted back.  

"But..."

"Shuttup!" she shouted, pushing herself back off of me and yanking my shorts down to reveal my fully stiff, rock hard 6 inch member.  She moaned loudly, grabbing it and stroking it wildly, looking straight up at me.  I moaned loudly.

"Kylie stop." I said, my voice shaking.  "KYLIE STOP!" I shouted at her.  She just growled wildly before sucking ravenously on my balls while jacking me off furiously.

"I swear to god you're going to fuck me while you're home, Geoff.  You can make it easy or you can make it hard." she shouted.

"For god's sake, Kylie, you're my sister and you've only had sex with one guy in your life..."

"And he was terrible!" she yelled, "But I know you're good, I've heard girls in here with you.  FUCK ME" she shouted, licking my shaft and swirlign her tongue around the head of my cock.

"Kylie..." I said, weakening, looking down at her beautiful eyes and giving up.  "Oh yeah... Kylie." I sighed

She grinned, continuing the great blowjob she had started.  She bobbed her head on my cock wildly, gagging as my cock hit the back of her throat.  She pulled off, sucking on my balls again while stroking the shaft.  I moaned loudly, "OH FUCK, KYLIE!  Yeahhhhh where did you learn that?" "I've been watching some of Eric's old dirty movies," she moaned.

"Oh... fuckkkk" I groaned, leaning my head back.  For another few minutes, Kylie jacked me off furiously, sucked on my cock ravenously, and screeched at me to cum all over her.  And after those few miutes, I knew I was about to.  I sat up, she adjusted herself and started to deepthroat my cock over and over, moaning wildly.  "OHHH FUCK! YEahhhhhh Kylie you fcking little slut! ohhhhhh" I moaned.  She stopped for a moment, looking up at me, "Don't call me that, I'm only a slut for you." she said sternly.  I smiled at her, "I know, I'm sorry but god keep going," I sighed to her, pushing her head back towards my cock.  She grinned, sucking on the head wildly while running her hand up and down the shaft so fast her fingers were a blur.  I moaned wiildly, almost shouting as I gently pushed her head further down my cock, "Yeahhhh Kylie! Be my slut! Ahhhhhh you're my fucking whore! YEAHAHHHHHH OH FUCK!" I shouted as she stroked me, sucked me, licked me, wildly.  "I'm gonna' cum, Kylie!" I shouted.  "MMMMMMMMMMM" she moaned as she deepthroated me one more time befor epulling off and rubbing my cock wildly between her hand and her tits.  I screamed as my cock sent out huge jets of semen all over her tits and face.  "YEAHHHHHHH!" we both yelled as the cum splashed all over both of us.  

She grinned at the shocked expression on my face as she straddled me again.  "What?" she said, smiling innocently, having wiped the cum off of her face.  "Holy shit, Kylie," I said. 

 "You owe me now," she said sternly, looking right at me.  I grinned, holding her head in my hands, kissing her romantically.  She moaned, more out of love than out of sexual pleasure, we were kissing a lot slower this time around, it was my style as oppose to her inexperienced excuse for one.  Then without warning, I sped things up, making out with her wildly and attacking her tits again.  She moaned" OHHHH GEOFF YEAH!"  I reached down inside her short shorts and started to rub the outside of her vagina.  "ahhu hhh" she gasped as her vagina was touched by the first person besides her for over a year.  I grinned, insrting my middle finger into her opening and starting to stroke slowly.  She started to pant, through our make out, breathing heavily and rubbing my still hard member slowly.  I pulled away from the kiss and looked her straight in the eyes as  I sped up my pace with my fingering, holding the back of her head with my other hand and thrusting wildly into her vagina.  "AHHHH OHHHHH UHHHHH" she moaned, throwing her head back.  I held her head sternly, rotating it back down and making her look right at me as I hooked two fingers now inside her pussy, hitting her g-spot. She screamed, loud and without worry.

For the next couple minutes I fingered her to two orgasms, both of which she writhed, screamed, and flailed through.  I pushed her off of me and onto her back, positioning my mouth at her drenched cunt and grinning up at her.  "Ohh my god..." she sighed, slowly feeling her own tits.  I grinned, as I pulled her  shorts off her long and beautiful legs.  "Make me scream!" she shouted at me, "EAT ME!" I didn't disappoint, diving my tongue inside her and tongue fucking her right away, lunging back and forth. "AHHHHHH! OHHHHH YEAHAHH MYYYY GOD FUCKK YES EAT ME GEOFF! EAT YOUR SISTER! EAT YOURRRR WHOOOOORE! FUUUUUCKKKK YEAAAAAAAAH!" she shouted, already getting close to cumming.  I licked her labia wildly, shoving fingers back into her and flicking her cute little cliterus wildly.  She went over the edge, "OHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH YESSSSSSSSS GEOFFFF OH MY FUCKKKKING GODDD YEAHHHH JUST LIKE THAT1 OHHHH I'M GOING TO FUCKING CUMMMMMM! AHHHHH I'MGONNA CUM! AHHHHHH I'M GONNNNNA CUMMMM! UHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!" she screamed, "YESSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSS!" She erupted into a waterfall of fluids.  I dove right back in, sucking on her fully exposed clit, still fingering her.  "OHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!" she continued to scream, "FUCKKKK YEAAAAH! FUCKK ME WITH YOUR TONGUE BROTHER! FUCKKKKKKK I NEEEEED IT! OHHHHHH I'M GOING TO.... AHHHHHHHH!" I grinned, inserting my tongue into her vagina again and grabbing one of her breasts, pinching the nipple roughly, holding her other hand in my other hand, I directed it towards her clitterus.  She rubbed it slowly, "OHHHHHHHHH YESSSSS RIGHT THEREEE JUST LIKE THATTTTT IM GONNA FUCKKKKING CUMM AGAIN! EHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH AHHHHHHHHHHHH!" she shrieked.  " grabbed her hand that was touching herself and made her rub herself much faster, her hand in mine was a blur.  "OHHHHHHHHH YESSSSS OHHHHH GOD!" i had increased the pace of my attack inside her as well.  "OHHHHHH MYYYY GAWWWWD GEOFF! YESSS EAT ME! EAT ME! YESSSSSSS OHHH SHITTTTT! FUAAAAAAAAAAACK I LOOOVE YOU!!!" she shrieked.  "I'MMMM FUCKKING CUMMMING! I'M FUCKING CUMMMMMING! OHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH YESSSSSSSSSSSS!" she screamed, pulling my head into her cunt and humping me wildly as she squirted out an incredible orgasm, shaking wildly and screaming.

I pulled away from her convulsing body, "Holy shit, Kylie, you're a squirter?" I exclaimed.

"W-w-haat's-s th-that?" she asked, shaking.  I grinned, my sister was so innocent, so naive, so needing to be fucked.

I laid on top of her, she was still shaking.  "I'm going to fuck you, Kylie."

"Fuckkk yeahh," she sighed, kissing me wildly again.  I positioned the head of my 6 inch long, 6 inch around, cock at her entrance, rubbing the outside of her pussy with it.  She moaned wildly, hissing and humping me, begging me to put it in.  I pulled her into a deep make out session, our tongues licked each others wildly before I slammed my cock into her, all in one thrust.  She pulled away from the kiss...

"FUUUUUUAAAAAAAACK!" she screamed, pain and pleasure painting her face as she writhed, her legs shaking, her hands scratching my back and neck, grippping me violently.  I grinned at her, pulling out slowly and pushing all the way back in.  The look on her face cannot be described.  I knew for a fact that her ex boyfriend, the only guy she'd ever had sex with, was pretty small and was not even fully developed at the time that they had been dating.  I smiled, realizing that my only slightly abvoe average cock was going to feel like a foot-long to her.  

I started to thrust into her slowly but steadily.  "Uhhhh yeahahhhhhh ohhhh god" she sighed, having never been filled this well.  I grit my teeth, she was tighter than any vagina I could have ever imagined.  It was amazing.

"Ohhh Kylie you're sooo fucking tight.  You're such a fucking SLUT!" I shouted at her as I increased my pace a lot, hitting a steady pace that left the room filled with shrieks and slaps of my balls against her ass.  "OHHHHHHHH YEAAAA! YESSSS FUCKKKKK ME! FUICKKK THE SHIT OUT OF YOUR LITTTTTLE SLUT!" she screamed at me.  I dove my face into her tits, sucking wildlly.  "OHHHH YEAH!! OHHHHHH FUCKKKK! OHHHHH MY GOD!" she shouted, scratching my back wildly.  

Her long nails were inflicting pretty deep wounds in my back, but to make her pay I increased my pace even more, almost getting to where I'd be fucking any other girl.  I had to grit my teeth though because she was far tighter than other women I'd been with.  This pace was driving her crazy though.  "YESSSSS! YESSSSSSSSSS! OHHHHHHH'! AHHHHHHHH! AHHHHHHHHHHH! OHHHHHHH YESSSSSSS UHHHHHH SHIIIIIIIIIIIIT FUCKKKKKKKKKKKKK YEAHH!" she shrieked over and over, out of control.  I reached down, wrapping one of her legs around my waist.  She brought the other one around, hooking her heels together and pulling me into her even harder. "OHHHH FUCKKK YESSS! YEAHAHAHHHH GEOFF! OHHHHH AAHHHHHHHHH SHIT FUCKKKK! I''M GONNNA CUMMM AGAIN! I'M GONNA CUM1 I'M FUCKKING CUMMMMMMING! OHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH FUCK!" she shrieked, I felt her pussy spasming wildly and her legs shook, convulsing, her heels came unhooked  as she dug her nails deeper than ever into my back.  I rolled over, letting her be on top for awhile.  She started to bounce wildly, shrieking and moaning, her face full of pleasure.  She placed her hands back on my pecs again, screaming as she rubbed them and rode me like crazy.  "RIDE ME KYLIE! FUCKKKK YEAH YOU'RE SO FUCKING TIGHT YOU LITTTLE CUNNNT!" I shouted at her, rubbing her breasts wildly and spanking her.  She gave a start at the first spank before slapping me hard in the chest, leaving a red hand print and riding me cruelly.  "OHHHHHHH KYLIE!" i shouted.  She loved that I was yelling back at her.  "YESSSSSSS GEOFFF! FUCKKKKKKKKKK MEEEE!" she shouted.  I started to thrust up into her to meet her every bounce.  She was out of this world, her head thrown back, her words inaudible, her moans echoing off the walls."OHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH GOD YEAAHHHHHHH AAHHHHHHHHHHHH!" she shrieked over and over, throwing her head back and forth, bouncing on me like a pogo stick with every meeting of our thrusts causing both of us to moan. She reached down and started to rub her cliterus again while riding me wildly.  "FUUUUUUCKKKKKK OHHHHHH SHIT YES! GEOFF! YESSSSS FUCK MEEEEE OHHHHHH FUCK I LOVEEEEE IT! OHHHHHH YES RIGHT THERRRE YESSSSS I'M GONNA CUMMMM I'M GONNA CUMMMMM OHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH I'M CUMMING!" she screamed at the top of her lungs.  I thrust up into her like a madman as she shrieked, her whole body convulsing.  She managed to lift herself off of my cock as she had another crazy squirting orgasm again, convulsing like wild her arms lost support and she fell onto my thighs, her wild cunt squirting all over me, her screaming.

I was drenched.  I looked at her, she grinned, clearly getting more from this then she ever had expected.  "Ohhhhhhhh wow..." she sighed, leaning her head back.  I was in the zone now, I didn't care that Kylie was my sister anymore, she was a whore, she was my whore, she was going to get fucked like a whore.  

I grabbed Kylie around the thighs and picked her up, standing her up, she bent over, her hands gripping my desk as I positioned myself at her entrance again.  She looked back at me, she was still charged up somehow.  "FUCKKK ME AGAIN! DO IT! GO ALL THE WAAAY!" she screamed back at me as I started to enter her.  I slammed into her as hard as I could, she bucked before starting to slam back into me.  I was going as fast as I could right away this time.  She was shrieking, she couldn't believe how hard I was fucking her.  "OHHHHHHH! OHHHHHHH! YESSSSSS OH AHHHHH MMMMMMMM FUCKKKK YEAH! OHHHHHHHHH THATTTT'S IT! THAAAT'S IT! YEAAAAH! FUUUUUUUCK YEAAAAH! OHHHH GOD!" she shrieked, slamming her great ass back into me.  I grabbed onto her hips and pulled her back even harder against my every thrust.  She had laid her head down on the desk, raising her ass and screaming as her legs started to shake wildly.  I reacheda round and grabbed her cliterus between two fingers, rubbing it like crazy, jacking it off as if it were a tiny cock.  This sent her over the edge.  I felt another waterfall of fluids rush out of her, I pulled out to let them out and then slammed right back in.  She was out of this world, I cannot describe the noises she was making, but even with my window closed, I'm sure you could hear her outside the house.  I rubbed her clit and filled her pussy for what seemed like hours.  In reality it was only five minutes, but she was absolutely crying out with orgasms.  I cannot remember how many times she came.  Finally, I felt myself getting close to going over the edge.  I increased my pace even more, resembling a jackhammer as I unleashed all the power in my hips on her poor tight cunt.  "OHHHHHHHHH AHHHHHHH YESSS GEOFFFF OHFUCKKKK FUCKKKKKKKK! FUCK FUCK! YEAAAAAAAAH! FUCK ME HARDDEEER YESSSS! OHHHHH FUCK! OHHHHHHHAHHHHHHHHHHHH SHIIIIIIT!" she screamed at the top of her lungs before having another huge climax, this one bringing her to her knees.  My cock popped out as she fell down, I quickly queezed the top of the head to buy myself another minute.  

She looked up at me, grinning.  I bent down and picked her up, throwing her back on the bed and spreading her legs.  I told her to reach up with her hands and hold her feet so that her legs were sticking straight up in the air.  She was flexible enough and I slammed into her with lost abandon.  As soon as I did, she knew why I had told her to do it, I was hitting her g-spot relentlessly.  "OHHHHHAHHHHHH FUCK YEAAAAAH! AHHHHHHHHHHH GOOOOD OHHHH MY GODDDD YESSSSS OHHHHH SHITTTT I'M GONNA CUUUUUUM!"  she shrieked as I attacked her g-spot with wild thrusts.  I could feel myself about to cum and suddenly for some reason realized that I wasn't wearing a condom and that I wasn't sure if my sister was on birth control.  No... she wasn't.  I had to get out.  "OHHHHHH YEAAAAAAAAH! OHHHHH GEOFFF YESSS I'M YOUR WHORE! I'MMM YOUR SLUTTTT NOW FUCKKKKK MEEEEEEEE! OHHHH AHHHHHHH GOD CUMMMMMMMMING! I'MMMM FUCKING CUMMMING AGAIN!" she shrieked, pushing her hips up against me as she continued to hold onto her feet for dear life, her knuckles were going white because her whole body was convulsing so strongly that it made it hard to keep her grip.  I grabbed her ass and pulled her as far down my shaft as I could as I slammed into her as fast and hard as any girl I'd ever been with.  "FUCKKKK KYLIE! I'M GONNNA CUMM ! OHHHHH!" I shouted, about to pull out.  "YESSSSS FUCKKKKK OHHHH MY GOD FUCKKKK YEAAAAH! I NEED IT! OHHHHHHHHHH I'M CUMMMMMMMING AHHHHH SHIT YESSS I LOVE YOU GEOFFFFF OHHHH!" she screamed at the top of her lungs, finally losing her grip as her cunt spasmed and her body shook wildly again.  "OHHHHHHH GEOFFFF FUCKKKKK YEAHHHHHHHH YESSSSS! OHHHHHH FUCKING CUMMMMMM WITH MEEEE! OHHHHHH SHITTT FUCK THE SHIT OUT OF YOUR SISSSSTER! YESSSS! YESS! AHHHHHHHHH UHHHHHHH MYYY GODDD! OHHHHHHHHH FUUUUUUUUUUUUUUUUCKKKKKK! CUMMMM FUCKIIIING INSIIIDE MEEEEE! OHHHHHHH YESSSSSSSS!" I had to pull out though.  "OHHH KYLLIIIEEE YEAHHH! OHHH FUCKKKK YOUUUU YESSSSS YOU FUCKIIIING WHOOORE! AHHHHHHHH I'M GONNA CUMM I'VE GOTTA PULL OUUUT! WHERE DO YOU WANT IT!? AHHHH SHIT!" I shouted, "NOOOO INSIDEE ME I NEEEEED IT! SHIT! FUCKKKKKKK!" she screamed.  No.  I knew she wasn't on birth control, SHE knew she wasn't on birth control!  "I LOVE YOU GEOFFFF FUCKKKKKK ME! FUCKKKKKING CUMMMMMM IN ME! OHHHHH PLEEEEEASE DON'T PULLL OUT! I WAAAANT YOU FOREEEEVER FUUUUUUUCK YESSSSSSS FUCKKKKK!" This was too crazy, I had come to my senses despite still thrusting like a madman and doing everything else in the world to her.  

Suddenly, her legs clamped around my lower back, pulling me back into her as deep as possible while I was still thrusting.  "YEAHHHHHHHH FUUUUUUUCKKKKK MEEEEEEEE! OHHHHHHHHH GOOOODDDDD CUMMMMMMM INSIIIIIIIIIDE MEEEEEEE! OHHHH FUCKKK I'M CUMMMIN AGAIN! FUCKKK FUCKKK FUCKKKK THAAAAT'S IT! OHHHH MY GOD I'M GOING TO CUM AGAIN! I'M CUMMMMMING! AHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH EHHHHHHHHHH OHHHHH GEEEOFFF! OHHHHHHHHH FUUUUUAAAAAAACK!" she was totally out of control, flailing her arms, hitting me, scratching me, licking me, but most importantly trapping me, I had stopped thrusting but it was too late, she was slamming her hips up, rubbing her pussy up around my cock as she pulled me back in with her legs.  I was strugging to get free but I knew it was too late, I was... already... ejaculating.  "AHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!" I shouted at the top of my lungs as the best climax I'd ever had shot into my sister's pussy.  "YESSSS YESSSSSSSSS ! OHHHHHHHH GEOFFF SOOOOO GOOD! OHHHH FUCKKKKK! OHHHHHHHH MYYYYYY SHIIIIIIT! YEEAHHHHH GEOFF! GEEEEOFFFF! OHHHHHHHHH FUUUUUUUUUUUCK, I'M CUUUUUUMMMMMMING!" the feeling of my hot liquids blasting into her and sticking to her insides had set her off again, shaking, convulsing, holding me for dear life with arms and legs, just as we had started, shrieking and screaming.  I couldn't help now that I was already cumming but start slamming into her again.  I grabbed her ass with both hands, slamming into her again with all my might, mercilessly pounding her tiny little pussy.  She was looking at me with a look of absolute desperation as she was now just cummming like a faucet, she was having a massive chain of orgasms that had her writhing, flailing, screaming louder tahn ever.  I couldn't believe how good this sex was.  I picked her up, carrying her around the room, fucking her like mad, furious at her for making me cum inside her.  I slammed her against walls, set her on desks and destroyed her, threw her back on the bed and thrust madly until she was begging me to stop.  "OHHHHH GODDDD! AHHHHHHHH GEOFFF! FUUUUUUUUCCCCCCK I CAN'T TTAAAAKE IT ANNYMORE! IIIII'M F-F-FUCKKKIIIING C-CUMMMING AAGGAAAIN! I CA-CAN'T TAAAAKE ANYYYYMOREEEE! OHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH GOOOOOOOOOD!"

I pulled out, my cock starting to go soft.  I had just blasted the biggest load of my life, had the best sex of my life, in and with my little sister.  Who wasn't on birth control.  She had made me do it.  I looked over at this incredibly sexy thing laying next to me.  She was passed out, she had done so during my last furious attack on her in my anger and rage.  I licked her whole body up and down, rubbing my cock against her and abusing her beautiful body for awhile.  She moaned through her semi-conscious state.  I ate her out slowly for a little while to help soothe her aching pussy before laying down next to her.  Well, she was probably going to be pregnant, but we could worry about that in the future.  At least for this week I was going to have the best fuck buddy of my life, and I was going to make her pay for what she did....

Oh was I...

My little sister Jess

Phyrixxx on Incest Stories

I woke up and rubbed my eyes, got up and went downstairs oblivious to the fact I was in boxers. I saw my sister sitting on the edge of the couch with her ‘boyfriend’ sitting on it. He sat there with a sour look on his face and a scarf wrapped around his neck and mop of black hair covering one eye. He was bitching about something and my poor sister sat there, looking upset. My sister was far too g

Brothers revenge on Sister

gimmeshelter on Forced Stories

Jack’s sister, Alison, was a hot piece of ass, and she knew it.  A stunningly beautiful 16 year old, long blonde hair, fit body, very full and firm DD-cup tits, super smooth long legs and a firm ripe peachy rear.  Jack’s parents thought she could do no wrong, a perfect innocent virgin, but in reality, she was a bitch, especially to Jack.  Jack and his mate Peter were14 years old, and had recently taken serious flack for drinking Jack’s Dad’s bottle of whiskey.  Of course, Alison had taken it the night before and drunk it with her friends but she stashed the empty bottle in Jack’s room, after Peter had stayed over the previous night at Jacks, as it was the holidays and they always hung out together.  Jack’s parents were furious

Read More
and wouldn’t listen to the boys pleas of innocence.  Peter’s parents were told but fortunately for him they didn’t punish him too severely, temporarily stopping his allowance.  Jack however, received a very painful spanking with a belt from his Dad and was grounded in the evenings.

Jack and Peter were fed up with Alison’s behaviour and plotted revenge against her.  Jack set up his Dad’s video camera in Alison’s room when he knew her boyfriend, Mark, was coming over that afternoon.  It was the holidays and Jack’s parents both worked.  Jack went out with Peter, so they had the house to themselves.  Jack knew they’d fuck each other, he had heard them plenty of times before.

Sure enough, when Jack was able to retrieve the video later that day, he had perfectly caught his sister in all sorts of compromising positions with Mark. This was fantastic news.  Obviously, he had to jack off to the sights in front of him, she may have been his sister, but seeing her get fucked was a sight to behold.

The next day Peter came over as usual and they went to Alison who was in the living room, Mark was working today and so he wouldn’t be over.  They said they’d like to watch a video on the TV.  Alison was reading so she didn’t object, until she saw what they were watching. 

She was furious and called Jack and Peter every name she could think of and demanded the video but Jack pointed out that it wasn’t the only copy.  They laughed her off and she knew they had her banged to rights. 

“Are you gonna show it to Mum and Dad then?” Alison asked.

“That depends” said Jack.  “You’ve always been a complete bitch to me and I’ve taken many a punishment for you, now it’s your turn”. Alison looked worried. Jack continued, “first off, you're gonna get naked and take a firm bare bottom hand spanking from Peter and me, then you’re gonna blow us both”. 

“Fuck off” she said, somewhat predictably, “you’re my brother, I aint touching you and there’s no way I’m putting Peter’s cock in my mouth either”. Jack and Peter hadn’t expected her to go for this, they knew it was too much but they were now able to negotiate.  She hadn’t argued against the spanking which was all they really expected to get, so that was great news.  “Ok then” said Jack, “you let me jack off over your tits and then you jack Peter off over your tits, twice each”. 

“Twice?” she said.  “Well the first time we’ll probably cum a bit too quickly and we want to get our moneys worth!” Jack said.  Alison thought about this for a moment and then said, reluctantly “ok, but I want all the copies of that recording first”.

The boys were shell-shocked, they hadn’t expected this, they just wanted to spank her bare ass, now they were getting much more.  Jack showed her the copies being wiped, agreeing to hand over the original when they were done.

“Go to your room” said Jack and we’ll be up in 30 minutes.  “30!” Alison exclaimed.  “Yep, I want you to think about what’s coming for a good half hour”.  Alison nodded and left the room. 

Jack and Peter smiled broadly at each other and proceeded with their plan.  They wanted to ensure they didn’t cum too quickly and so they went to Jack’s room and wanked themselves off, twice.  It was weird doing it front of each other but the thought of what was to come was too enticing.

They made her wait but after about 40 minutes passed they entered Alison’s bedroom to find her sat on her bed looking very apprehensive. 

“Stand up” Jack instructed.  Jack and Peter moved to the bed and sat down as Alison stood up.  “OK, first take off all your clothes” Jack said, “All of them?” Alison enquired pleadingly but knowing the answer.  “Of course, that’s what you agreed to” Jack reminded her.

Alison stood in front of them and placed her hands at the bottom of her t-shirt and swiftly pulled it over her head revealing her huge titties confined within a somewhat ill fitting bra, flesh spilling out over the edges.  “Jesus Christ!” exclaimed Jack, you’ll have to get mom and dad to get you a bra that fits properly!”  Alison smiled mockingly and proceeded to undo her skirt and let it fall to the floor.  She stood nervously in front of them in her bra and panties

The boys just sat there as she reached behind her back to undo her bra. Then she reached to the front cups and held for a second before she pulled the bra away to reveal her perfect, huge, firm tits with very prominent nipples.  “Fucking Hell, they’re magnificent” Jack gasped. “Unbelievable” Peter stammered, finally speaking.  Alison smiled sheepishly.

Alison then moved her hands to her panties and hooked her fingers in the sides, she then bent down in front of the boys and quickly took them off, giving them a fantastic view of her huge dangling tits.  They both wanted to reach out and touch them but they knew that wasn’t part of the deal.  Alison stood up and the boys didn’t know whether to look at her fantastic tits or trimmed pussy.

“Alright, lets get going” Jack finally said a little shakily.  Peter you first.  Peter stood up “Turn around” he said to Alison and she did to reveal her perfect, curvaceous firm ass for the first time.  Peter tapped her ass lightly “It almost seems a shame to spank something as lovely as this” as he ran his hand over her ass. The feeling was incredible, he was fondling the ass of the most beautiful, spectacular unattainable girl at school, or anywhere!  Jack watched Peter and couldn’t believe it either.  “Hey, no funny business” Alison protested.  “Just warming it up babe” Peter replied.

“OK, bend over and place your hands on the dresser” Peter instructed.  Alison did what she was told, waiting for the inevitable.  He stood at Alison’s side and placed his hand on her ass again, running it all over her cheeks.  He drew his hand back and brought it down.  He didn’t smack her very hard but he left his hand there.  They had earlier decided not to go too hard in case she changed her mind about what was to follow.  He would have been quite happy just to fondle her ass but he eventually remembered what he was doing and started to smack her ass repeatedly, gradually harder each time, and each time ensuring that his hand copped a good feel. 

After a while he said to Jack “man, you gotta have a go with this ass!”.  Jack smiled and replaced Peter, immediately placing his hand on his sister’s ass, giving it a good feel. “Christ, you really do have a great ass Ally, and I thought you were all about your tits!”  What a feeling this was, which alone nearly made up for all the crap he had had to put with from her.  He spanked her harder than intended and she made protestations that it hurt but Jack wasn’t deterred, remembering the many spankings he had endured. 

Alison protested for him to stop but he didn’t think he could it he wanted to until a thought entered his head.  “The only way I’ll ease up is if you’ll give us both some time on your tits” he said and with that he brought his hand down with his hardest slap yet.  “Fucking hell! How long?” Alison cried. “A minute each” Jack replied somewhat in shock.  “30 seconds “Alison responded.  Jack agreed, he would have settled for 10!

“I can’t believe I’m gonna let my brother suck my tits” Alison exclaimed as she stood up, tears running down her face but she was secretly grateful that the spanking had not been as severe as she had expected, it had actually been quite exciting in a strange way she didn’t fully understand.  “Close your eyes” Jack said “you’ll never know who is doing it, maybe it’ll be Peter for the full minute”.  “Yeah right, I’ve seen the way you always stare at my tits” Alison said.  Jack flushed a little.

Alison closed her eyes, Jack looked at Peter and they both smiled at each other.  Then Jack took his sister’s tits in his hands. The feeling was indescribable, these tits that he had lusted after for so long were finally his. Alison immediately started counting to 30 so realising the clock was ticking he lowered his head and started sucking furiously on her nipple, bowling the other massive tit in his hand as he sucked away.  It was noticeable that Alison’s voice became a little shaky as she counted, could she be enjoying it, Jack wondered.  In no time 30 seconds were up and Peter took his turn, his mouth now exploring the best tits he’d ever seen.  Again Alison’s count was a little breathless but 30 came and she pushed him away.  “You look a little flushed” Jack said to her.  “So do you” she said right back.

“OK then” Jack stammered, I guess this is as good a time as any for me to jack off on your tits!”.  He motioned for Alison to sit on the bed, which she did.  He took his clothes off and walked over and stood in front of her, unable to believe how he came to be standing in front of his beautiful, naked, sexy sister, who was gonna let him explode all over her huge tits. Alison was somewhat startled by his size, a good 6 inches, maybe more she thought, bigger than Mark anyway.  She prepared herself and he started to wank.  Although he had only wanked off twice only minutes before, the subsequent events of the day soon gave him a familiar feeling but he resisted with all his might.  “Jesus Jack, are you gonna cum or what” Alison said.  “Sorry sis, I guess you’re not as hot as you think!” Alison cast a glance at Peter and then, shocking them both, she took her brother’s cock in her hand and proceeded to wank him.  Jack couldn’t believe it, his sister was holding his cock!  Surprisingly, she wasn’t very good at a hand job and Jack felt the need to cum subside a little.  “Are you gay or something?!” Alison said at him.  “Actually sis, your technique needs a little work”.  “Does it now?” she said mockingly and she didn’t know why but the affront of the insult was too much and with that she put her brother’s cock in her mouth and proceeded to suck him off.

Jack nearly collapsed with shock, Peter’s jaw hit the ground.  This was too much for Jack and he exploded into his sister’s mouth.  Alison let him finish and then she swallowed the lot!  Jack looked at her blankly.  “My technique bad there as well was it?” she said mockingly. Jack couldn’t speak, he just shook his head.  Peter’s mind was boggled.  He’d just watched Alison blow her brother in front of him.

Peter eagerly jumped to his feet, quickly stripped to reveal a decent 5 inch cock, and moved Jack out of the way, “Christ is she gonna blow me too” he thought to himself.  Alison seemed to ponder things as she looked up at Peter.  She started wanking him in the hope he would cum quickly after what he’d seen but he didn’t.  Peter was praying for a blow job so he was desperate not to cum but it was so hard.  He closed his eyes and tried to think of anything but this goddess wanking him made it so hard.  Then Peter felt something strange, his cock felt damp.  He opened his eyes and looked down to see his cock impaled in Alison’s mouth.  Many thoughts rushed through his mind at once, this incredible stunner who he would never, ever have a chance with in the real world was sucking his cock, just because he happened to be friends with Jack and had been lucky enough to be the guy who stayed over on that night when Alison took the whiskey. He hadn’t even been punished badly for it, it was pure luck that he was in this position, he had done nothing to deserve it, he had felt up and spanked her ass, he had sucked her tits, been wanked by her, and now he was getting his first blow job.  He instantly unloaded a tonne of cum into Alison’s mouth.

Jack had recovered himself by now and had plotted some more.  “OK, sis, blow him again” he said.  “What, you’re out of your mind” she shouted.  “You agreed to let us cum twice each, its not Peter’s fault your handjob was so bad he couldn’t cum. Sure you can give him another handjob but I think we’d be here until next week before we’re done. The choice is yours, if you want the original of the tape, but he’s gotta cum again, as have I”.  Alison was in something of a state by now and not really capable of constructing a coherent argument so she quietly nodded her consent.  “Sit on the bed Pete” Jack instructed, “I want to see her on all fours in front of you.”

Peter sat down and Alison got down on the floor, his cock not even having gone limp yet and now it wasn’t going to!  She realised a handjob was not going to work so she immediately started blowing him again.  Jack admired the view from behind his sister, looking at her ass as her head bobbed up and down on Peter’s cock.

Jack moved behind his sister and gave her ass a gentle smack, leaving his hand resting on her rear.  He continued to fondle his sister’s ass and she made no move to stop him.  He gently manoeuvred his hand between his sister’s legs and could feel her pussy “Christ Ally” he remarked, “you’re wetter than an ocean!”  “Please don’t Jack” she said taking Peter’s cock out of her mouth, but this was too much for Jack.  It was clear to him now that she must have been enjoying all of this too, he was so caught up in his own pleasure he hadn’t considered why Alison had been such a surprisingly willing participant.  Jack made an instant decision, he was going to lose his virginity.

Jack mouthed to Peter to put his cock back in her mouth and to hold her shoulders down.  He forced his sister’s legs apart and held her hips firmly as he positioned himself for entry.  Alison cried for him not to do it but while her words were saying no, she wasn’t really making that much physical effort to extricate herself from the situation, or was it that they were too strong for her, Jack didn’t know and frankly at this moment in time he didn’t care.

Jack entered his sister’s tight pussy and started to pound away, with increasingly harder strokes.  It was the greatest feeling of his life and he knew he wouldn’t last long.  Peter continued to hold her down and, to his surprise Alison was still sucking him off. 

Peter hoped above all hope that Jack was going him to let him fuck her too.  Sure enough, it was only seconds before Jack emptied himself into his sister.  Then Jack said “Your turn then mate, lets swap positions!”.  Alison again uttered words of protest but there was either no fight left in her or she really was enjoying it, Jack couldn’t decide which and still didn’t care.

They repositioned themselves with Alison remaining on all fours, Peter entered his first pussy and Alison took Jack’s cock back into her mouth.  It was only seconds of hard thrusts into this pussy before Peter exploded in a blaze of ecstasy.

Jack wasn’t about to cum again yet so he decided he’d have another go in his sister’s pussy.  He picked Alison up and laid her on the bed.  Alison was crying but her protests had ended, she had accepted her fate, it seemed.  Jack climbed aboard and proceeded to fuck her again.    Her face was right in front of his, her eyes were closed, so he kissed her.  Alison didn’t kiss back but she didn’t pull her head away either.  After a while of fucking his sister with his tongue in her mouth, she become much more receptive and although she didn’t explore Jack’s mouth with her tongue there was no doubt that she was kissing her brother back.  It didn’t take very long for Jack to come once more into his sister. 

Peter looked at the beautiful girl laid on the bed and then back at Jack.  Jack smiled and shrugged.  Peter moved on top of Alison and started to kiss her beautiful mouth. He would have been happy just to be kissing this beauty, but he knew she wasn’t going to stop him fucking her again so he slipped his cock back into her moist pussy.  It was some kind of dreamland he never knew existed.  Needless to say he didn’t last very long before cumming again.

Jack decided that enough was enough and they left Alison lying on her bed. “Thanks sis” he said as he closed the door behind him, throwing the tape at her. Jack and Peter didn’t speak for a while, they were both in a state of shock.  “I’d better go” Peter finally said.  Jack nodded and said “don’t tell anyone about this”. Peter agreed.  After a while of sitting on the couch thinking about what had transpired, Jack began to feel remorse, he and his mate had just raped his sister, hadn’t they?  True she didn’t really seem to resist but it was still rape wasn’t it, he could be facing jail, he thought, not to mention alienation from his family.  He heard his Mom’s car pull into the drive. 

His Mom asked him how he was and she proceeded to make dinner.  Jack waved off his usual “fine” response. Soon after, he heard his sister come down the stairs.  She had just showered.  She didn’t look at Jack. The tension was palpable.

 “Have you two been fighting again?” the mother asked.  Neither Jack nor Alison answered and she knew that they must have, it wasn’t unusual. 

The evening passed uneventfully, they both spent most of the evening in their rooms, Jack terrified of the consequences if Alison confessed.  He barely slept that night.

Jack got up just before his mom left for work, his dad having left much earlier, and she made him a cup of tea.  “Take this up to your sister for me will you honey?” his mom asked “I have to go now”.  Jack nodded and crept up to his sister’s room.

He knocked lightly on the door, “Ally, I’ve got a cup of tea for you”.  He opened to door to find his sister awake.  He put the tea down and sat on the bed.  “What are you doing” she asked angrily.  “I’m sorry sis” he said sadly.  “I’m sorry about yesterday, it all got way out of hand.  Are you gonna tell?”  “What about how you and Pete raped me you mean” she retorted.  “Oh come on, rapes a bit strong isn’t it” Jack replied, knowing it wasn’t, but he felt his more usual feelings for his sister coming to the fore “you were a pretty willing participant”.  “I was powerless” she said.  “Bullshit, you could have stopped it any time but I think you enjoyed it, I think you liked two guys using you.  I don’t think Mark can satisfy you, can he?”

“He doesn’t have as big a cock as either you or Pete, no” she said quietly, looking Jack straight in the eye and taking him completely by surprise.  Jack didn’t know what came over him but he leaned over and kissed his sister hard on the lips. Alison broke away “what are you doing” she said a little breathlessly but he kissed her again, deeper, longer and this time she kissed him back and thrust her tongue into his mouth.  He moved his hands under the blanket to her breasts, massaging them through her night shirt.  He lifted her shirt up over her breasts and worked his way back down to those magnificent objects of his obsession, sucking, licking and kissing every inch.  He repositioned himself on top of her and kissed her mouth again as he lowered himself into her willing pussy. Alison groaned and they fucked rhythmically.  Jack came in seconds once more, but Alison held him inside her as they kissed and soon enough they were fucking again. Longer, harder and with more passion than ever before.  They thrust firmly against each other and Jack knew that he didn’t have long to last when the text tone for his mobile phone that was in his trousers that were discarded at the foot of the bed went off.  The shock of this sound pushed Jack over the edge and he once more emptied himself into his sister.  They lay next to each other, Jack exhausted but Alison had other ideas.  She moved on top of Jack and moved her head to his cock, kissing and sucking every inch.  Jack was in heaven and this time he was able to savour his sister’s very skilful blow job, and her long slow. Deep sucks.  Soon she decided she needed more and she climbed on top of Jack and rode him cowgirl.  Jack now had a new perception of heaven, looking up at his sister’s big tits swaying as she bounced furiously on his cock.  Soon, another load of cum exploded into his sister and they lay side by side, both exhausted now. 

Jack’s phone went off again and he looked at his messages. “They’re from Pete” he said “ he wants to know if everything is ok!”

My Niece's Best Friend

publisher on Taboo Stories

My name is Peter, I am 22 years old and I still live with my Parents.  It is convenient as my Mother does not take any money from me for rent or food so what I earn is all mine.  I have two older sisters and neither of live with as they are both married.  One of them, Babs has a Daughter called Sonia, my Niece, who is 13 years old.  Sometimes she will come round and drop her off to stay the weekend with Sonia’s Gran & Granddad.  They love her staying but she can be a pain sometimes.

 

Read More
Normal">One weekend Babs came over with Sonia and said that Sonia was desperate to stay with her Gran & Granddad so she dropped her off with a weekend bag and went on her, happy that she was free for the weekend.  Unfortunately this weekend my Mother & Father were going to a Green Bowling Match on both Saturday and Sunday so they asked me to look after Sonia while they were playing in this competition.  What else could I do but agree, so I was tuck with Sonia for two whole days.  Not that I didn't like her, I did but it pissed me off that Babs just did not care as long as she had her weekend of fun.

 

Not long after my parents had left on Saturday Morning I could see that Sonia was getting bored so I suggested that she go next door and see if the Pam, the girl who lived next door and whom she was friendly with, was in and if so perhaps they could play together.  Off she went and was back in 10 minutes with Pam in tow.

 

I looked at them and said "What happened, you were supposed to be playing with Pam at her house."

 

"We can't," said Pam, "As my Dad is not well so my Mum sent me here so we would not make a noise and disturb him".

 

Can't win I thought. "OK then lets play a Game, mmmm how about Hide 'n Seek.  Since I knew they both loved playing this game I was not surprised when they both instantly agreed to this activity.  Pam Said "I want to Hide first and I want Peter to hide with me and not on my own for when I am on my own I get found too quick"

 

""OK, OK," I said "this first hide will be me and Pam and you Sonia will look for us.  Now you close your eyes and count to a hundred, and no cheating either."

 

So I grabbed Pam’s hand and off we went to look for a place to hide with Sonia's loud counting ringing in our ears. 1, 2 , 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10, etc etc.

 

I fond what I thought was the perfect hiding place, an old wardrobe in the spare bedroom.  It was quite big and some old clothes in it so if Sonia looked in she would not see us unless she moved them.  We climbed in and I sat down on the floor and Pam sat down in front of me with her back to me.  I had to spread my legs so she could sit on the floor and she lent her back on my tummy and chest.  It was not quite dark as the door did not fit right and a ban of light shone through where the door did not fit.  After a while this made it fairly easy to see Pam and she was sitting there sucking her thumb. 

 

Time passed and I was starting to get restless and I was forever trying to see out of the crack in the door, but there was no sign of Sonia at all.  I don’t know how it happened, I must have been bored or something, but I found my right hand on Pam's Leg and I was stroking it just above the knee.  The first I noticed I was doing this was when I realised I was just about to slide my hand under her short skirt.  I skidded to a halt as I did not want to give Pam a fright.  I looked at her but she was quiet and continued to suck her thumb.

 

I shrugged my shoulders and I thought why not lets see what she would do if I did slide my hand up her skirt.  So I started to stroke her leg again and this time I did slip my hand under her skirt. I went up a few inches and down, then up a bit higher and back again.  I was watching Pam all the time but the only reaction from her was to lean further back and close her eyes.  I continued until my hand was at the edge of her Panties where I hesitated but not for long.  I ran my fingers over the thin material of her Panties and I could feel the start of her slit of her cunt.  I slowly tracked down but I did not get far as she had her legs tight together.   I whispered in her ear.

 

“Open your legs then I will be able to tickle you better”

 

I waited and I thought that she would not do this, then with a sigh her legs opened wide.  I ran my fingers down her slit and back up again several times and this caused Pam to give a small shiver.   I then reached around her body with my left arm, she was quite slim so this was fairly easy for me to do and I ran my left hand up her leg until I was able to grasp the Crotch of her panties.  I gently pulled this to one side and this gave my right hand freedom to explore her Bare Cunt.  This I did and I my right hand played with her slit and her little clit popped out and I played with this also.  It was so smooth and the aroma from it was so sweet it made me drool.  She was too young for any hair and although I tried I could not see it clearly but I let my fingers see for me. Pam gave a quick gasp when I tried to find her Cunt Hole so I could push in a Finger.  Then suddenly !!

 

BANG !!!  The wardrobe door was wrenched open and Sonia yelled out “I found you, I found you”

 

As fast as I could I let go of Pam’s Panties and I pulled her skirt down.  I was certain that Sonia never saw anything as we were mostly covered by the clothes hanging in the wardrobe.

 

After this I persuaded them both that I was tired and didn’t want to play anymore, but really I needed to go and have a Wank to relive my sexual tension.  So they both went off to Sonia’s Bedroom and I went to relieve my self.

 

On Monday I got up late and I grabbed myself some cornflakes for breakfast.  I had just finished them when there was a small knock at the back door.  I opened it to find Pam standing there in her school uniform.  She asked if Sonia was in but I said no as she would be at school.  She then went on to say that the school had sent them all home as there had been a burst water pipe and most of the school was flooded.  So she had come round to here as there was no one in her house as her Mum & Dad were at work.

 

I said that she had better come in and she could stay with me until her MUM came home which would be about 4pm.  She walked in and we went into the living room.  She put her schoolbag on a chair and took off her Jacket and did the same with that.  I sat down on the couch and invited her to sit beside me.  I looked at her and said “well we have a some time before your Mum comes home so what would you like to do?”

 

“Can we play a game” She asked

 

“Sure”, I said, “What game would you like to play?”

 

“What we did on Saturday” She replied”, “You know the tickling game like the one we played in the Wardrobe”

 

I just looked at her with my mouth open and eventually I asked, “You mean the game where I was tickling your legs?”

 

Pam looked at me and nodded her head.  I took a deep breath and told her, “Sure we can play that game but you must promise me you will never tell anyone that I played this game with you, OK”

 

“I promise”, Pam replied, “I won’t even tell Lumpy.”  Lumpy was her tattered old Stuffed Toy Elephant.

 

“OK then”, I said, “Come and sit in between my legs just like you did in the Wardrobe.”  I shuffled back on the couch and I opened my legs to give her room to sit on the couch.  Pam came and sat between my legs and she leaned back and lent on me and before I could say a word she opened her legs wide.  She was wearing a white Shirt and a Grey Pleated Skirt and I slipped my left arm around her waist and my right hand slipped under her skirt.

 

Pam closed her eyes and gave a small sigh and started to suck her thumb.  I slid my hand up her leg until it came to her Panties.  Since her legs were separated I could run my fingers up and down her Panty covered slit easily.  Pam just sat there and very slightly pushed her hips upwards every time I felt her slit.  With my left had I reached under her skirt and took hold the crotch of her Panties and pulled it to one side.  Her pussy was now uncovered for me to feel as much as I wanted to and I wanted to feel it very much indeed.

 

With a hand that trembled slightly with eagerness I traced my fingers up and down her Hairless Slit and I pressed down at the top and her little Clit popped out.  I rubbed this and Pam went “MMMMMMM” and her slit was starting to get quite moist.  I wanted to see her Pussy as feeling it was not enough so I lifted her skirt but although I could see most of it I could not see it all.

 

I whispered in her ear “You know I could tickle you a lot better if you took off all your clothes.”  I could see her thinking about this and she turned her and looked at me and then said, “OK that would be cool” and she stood up.  She started to undo the buttons on her shirt so I unfastened the button on the side of her skirt and pulled down the Zip.  Her skirt slipped down and at the same time she removed her shirt and she was standing there in a pair of white panties with the crotch still pulled to one side.  I took hold of the waist band and pulled them down to her ankles and Pam stepped out of them. She was beautiful all naked and her skin was so smooth.  I looked to her pussy and it was slightly puffy and her clit was visible as a little pink knob and the skin was so smooth it took my breath away.

 

I placed my hands on her Bum and I gently pulled her to me.  She shuffled to me and I lent forward and I kissed her Slit.  Her pussy juice slipped into my mouth and it was so sweet and musky all at the same time.  Pam gave a shudder and she opened her legs and stood there holding on to my head with her feet apart.  I pushed my tongue into her Cunt hole and it was soooo tight.  Pam gave a Gasp and held on to me even tighter.  I stood up and at the same time picked Pam up in my arms, she was quite small and light so I had no problem in carrying her.  I walked through to my bedroom and I laid her down on my bed.  She looked beautiful lying there all naked, she was not shy and she was happy for me to see her like this.  She spread her legs and she played with her cunt and she rubbed her clit.  I watched her do this and I then asked her.

 

“Pam would you like to see me all naked?”  She stopped what she was doing and just nodded her head vigorously and then continued to rub her cunt.  I removed all I was wearing and soon I was Fully Naked with my cock sticking out like a flagpole.  Pam’s eyes were like saucers as she stared at my cock and I sat down beside her and took hold of her hand and placed it on my Hard Cock.  I showed her how to play with it and she soon caught on and she knelt beside me and took hold with both hands and with a big Grin on her face she rubbed my Cock up and down.  OOOOO The sensation was wonderful, that along seeing this beautiful little girl all naked with a perfect little Hairless Cunt and I knew if she kept this up I would soon CUM.

 

As I did not want this I stopped her rubbing and I told her to lie on her Back and to open her legs wide as I was going to kiss her pussy.  She quickly lay down with legs spread wise open.  I got between her legs I kissed her Cunt, mmmm still as sweet as before.  I sucked her clit into my mouth and I nibbled at it and this made Pam Moan out with real pleasure.  I Pushed my tongue in her Hole as Far as I could and her juices poured into my mouth which I swallowed.  I kept this up, nibbling and sucking and tonguing her Cunt and soon her hips were bucking up to me, pushing into my face.  She moaned and made mewing like noises and it was plain she was about to have a orgasm.  She went as stiff as a Board and pushed cunt into my face hard.  I licked and nibbled her clit and the gave a Huge shudder and moaned out loud “OOOOOO   AHHHHH MMMMM”  as her orgasm hit her.  I kept on sucking on her cunt and I swallowed the sweet cunt juice and the taste was such a turn on I almost shot my load all over the bed.

 

I had to stop or I would have cum so I lay beside Pam and I stroked her small body all over, from her budding breast to her swollen lips of her cunt.  Slowly she began to breathe a bit more slowly and she opened her, looked at me and said, “WOW, that was the most fantastic thing I have ever had, can we do it again sometime, Please?”

 

I looked down at her and I smiled as I replied, “Sure we can, but if you think that was good I could do something to you right know that you will like even more”  So Saying I knelt up and I positioned myself between her open legs and I took hold of my Hard Cock.  I waggled it at and she half sat up to watch me.  At first she looked puzzled then a look of enlightenment crossed her face and she blurted out, “I know you what to put your Cock in me, you want to Fuck me, that’s right isn’t it”

 

I smiled and I answered, “Yes you are right Pam, I want to Fuck you real bad, I want to feel my Cock in your tight little Cunt and I want to make a woman of you.  I must admit for a brief second you will feel a little pain but once my Cock is fully in you and moving in and out you will love it.  Being Fucked is far better than getting your Cunt Kissed.”

 

Pam lay back and smiled at me and said, “I have been wanting to be fucked for some time, ever since my best friend Mary was Fucked by her Daddy, I tried to get my Daddy to do the same to me but he refused although he does play with my Cunt every so often, but not as good as you.  So Please Fuck me!

 

With a wicked grin on my face I pointed my cock at her Cunt Hole and I felt the lips of her Cunt open slowly as I started to push in.  I had to pull out and push in again and again and she was so tight.  In my Cock went 1 cm at a time, then back out and then in deeper another cm.  Soon I knew my Cock was at her Hymen and with one extra hard push I would take her Virginity.  I pulled back till my Cock was almost out of her Cunt, then I pushed in as hard as I could.  It was like putting my Cock in Tight Hot Treacle and then I felt her Hymen and I kept on going and I was through.  Pam gave a small squeal and that was all and she wrapped her legs around my body, at least as far as her little legs could do so.  I was all the way in and I lay there for a few seconds to let me calm down and also to let Pam get used to my Cock being fully inside her.

 

After a minute I started to slowly pull back out then pushed back in and I slowly Fucked her.  I wanted to make it last but each time I pushed in her Cunt Muscles sucked me in and ripples of muscles gripped my Cock which sent sensations of pleasure running from my Cock all over my Body.

 

In the end I had to speed up and I really started to Fuck Pam and with each thrust she Pushed her hips back up at me and soon my Balls were banging against her small Anus.  I was Fucking her as hard as I could and I no longer was caring if I was hurting her or not.  It was clear though by her moans of pleasure and her thrusting hips she was enjoying it as much as me.  My Cock became bigger and with a Final thrust my Cum spurted out into her Cunt Hole and I was totally frozen there unable to move and my Cock pumped out load after load of thick white Cum.  I felt Pam’s Cunt Muscles contract and they squeezed my Cock as her own Orgasm raged through her.  This was the most extreme feeling I have ever had in my life and I was shuddering with the experience.  As my Cock started to wilt I fell to one side and flat on my back, exhausted.

 

I lay there gasping and slowly I started to get my breath back.  I was lying there on my back with my eyes closed when I felt that I was being kissed.  I responded and the lips that wee kissing me tasted sweet.  I opened my eyes and kneeling beside was Pam. She was leaning down and kissing me so I slipped my arms around her slim body and held her to me.  She pressed her lips to mine and I gently pushed my tongue out and it pushed past her lips and to her teeth.  She soon got the hint and she opened her mouth and pushed her tongue into mine.  I sucked on her tongue and then she sucked on mine.  As a cool down after such a fantastic Fuck this was wonderful.

 

Pam knelt back up again and I looked at her.  She was kneeling and sitting on her heels.  Her legs were slight spread and I could see her Cunt clearly, there was a mixture of my Cum and her Cunt Juice dripping from her Slit.  With a finger I scooped some of this up and I licked it all off, mmmm it was sweet and slightly salty all at the same time, very nice indeed.  I again ran my finger up Pam’s slit and got some more of this mixture and holding it out to Pam I asked her if she would like to taste some.  Not answering she leaned forward and sucked it all off my finger.  She licked her lips and said it tasted good.

 

I then noticed the Time, it was nearly 4pm so I said to Pam that she had better get dressed as her Mum would be home soon.  I went into the bathroom got a Clean cloth and wet it and then got Pam to stand with her legs open.  I washed her down between her legs and washed away all the Cum that was seeping from her Cunt.  I then fetched her clothes and I helped to dress her.  She was quite capable of dressing herself but I could not resist helping as I could grab a quick feel of her Cunt as I did so.  Once dressed we sat and talked a bit and she promised again that she would not tell anyone about what happened.  Just then a car stopped outside and on looking out I saw it was Pam’s Mum.  I quickly gave Pam a Kiss and I took her to the door and opened it just as her Mum was about to ring the bell.  Shortly after they left with Thanks ringing in my ears from Pam’s Mum and Pam herself waving to me with a smile on her face.

 

 

The weekend came and it was Saturday once more.  Babs came round and asked me to look after Sonia for the Afternoon.  I agreed and she was soon off and away.   Sonia’ Gran & Grandad were out shopping and were not expected back for at least 4 to 5 hours as they had said that they would also stop off for a meal on the way home.

 

I was watching a Football Match on TV so I walked back into the Family Room where the TV was.  Knowing Sonia did not like TV I switched it off.  I sat down and looked at Sonia and I asked her, “Well it is just us then for the Afternoon what would you like to do.”

 

She came and sat beside me took my hold of my had and said, “Well Uncle Peter what I would like to do with you is to play a Game, the same one you played with Pam on Monday past.”

 

I went cold all over and I stuttered “W…W…What do you mean?”

 

Looking me straight in the eye Sonia answered, “You know what I mean, when you took all her clothes off and then took her to your bedroom where you Fucked her.  So since you did this I want you to do the same to me, I want you to Fuck me like you Fucked her”

 

I hope you liked this and it will be continued in another Story

 

Virgin Girl Scout Ripe to Eat

g_goyal2000 on Incest Stories

Jane Mayon undressed in her bedroom and put on her girl scout outfit, picked up the cloth bag filled with boxes of cookies, and then headed out. She called to her mother as she went through the living room: "Mom, I'm going." Her mother answered from the kitchen: "Hold on, dear."

Jane waited impatiently at the living room door. Her mother came from the kitchen and asked her: "Where exactly are you going? Are you selling or are you delivering?"

"I'm delivering," Jane replied. "I'm going to some of the places on the list."

Read More
face="Arial" size="3">"I'll drive you," her mother said.

"Oh Mom, no. I'm just going to a few places--four or five--just around the neighborhood. To Aunt Clara's and Mrs. Wallace and the Simmons', and Uncle Dick. Just the ones who have placed orders for the cookies and are within walking distance."

"Okay, dear," her mother said, "but remember, dinner is at six. Don't let Aunt Clara trap you into having tea and talking, or else she'll keep you there and you'll never get out."

"I know," Jane replied. "Well, I'm on my way."

She left her house and walked down the residential street, planning her route as she walked along. Aunt Clara first, she thought, then the Simmons', then cross the street and down to Mrs. Wallace, and then, last of all, on my way back, Uncle Dick.

Jane was a typical girl scout, in that she was an adolescent, fourteen years old, full of vim and curiosity, and a virgin. She was well-developed for her age; the girl scout outfit she wore fit snugly around her pubescent body, outlining her budding breasts, developing hips and thighs, and her perky rump. The outfit was short, ending a good six inches above her knees, showing plenty of her soft full legs.

Jane delivered the cookies to Aunt Clara, the Simmons' and Mrs. Wallace, collected the money, and reflected on how many more boxes she needed to sell to win the computer. She had already sold a total of eight dozen boxes of cookies in the past three weeks, but she figured she would need to sell at least that many more to have any chance of coming in first in her scout troop, and winning the grand prize: a brand new pc. But time was running out. There was only one week left in the cookie sale. I need to find people who will buy more than one box, she thought. Maybe Uncle Dick will...

She made her way to her uncle's house, thinking about him. Over the past year, he had become more attentive to her, calling her "sweetie" and "honey" (but only when no one else was around), and touching her. Whenever they were alone, he would find some way to touch her, to place his hands on her shoulders or arms or back or hips. Once, he had come to her house when her parents were gone, and he had finally pulled her onto his lap. He had stroked her hip and flank and nuzzled her cheek and neck. She had felt him moving his crotch up and down and around on her rump, and she had felt a stiff lump throbbing and pressing upon her butt. Her uncle's lips nuzzling her cheek and neck, his hand stroking and softly squeezing her hip and flank, and especially his rotating crotch and that stiff lump throbbing and rubbing upon her rump, had sent a warm tingly fizzy feeling shooting through her body. She wondered what would have happened next had her parents not come home at that time...

She knocked on her uncle's door and reached in the bag and pulled out a box of cookies. Her uncle opened the door and his face lit up. "Well, well, if it isn't my favorite niece and girl scout. Come on in, honey."

She entered her uncle's house and he closed the door.

"I see you've got the cookies," he said, pulling out his billfold.

"Well, I've got the money. This should take care of it." He handed her a bill and she opened her bag. "Let me see, let me get the change," she said.

"Oh, no change," he said. "You keep it."

"But it's a lot of change I owe you, it's more than..."

"Don't worry about it," he smiled. "Keep it. It'll help you in your sales."

"Gee, thanks, Uncle Dick. It will help. Now, I only need to sell about eight dozen more boxes minus the one you bought."

"Why so many?" he asked. She explained about winning the pc, and he smiled and wagged his head. "Well, good luck to you. Maybe I could buy another box from you. But first, let me sample your wares." He opened the box and pulled out a cookie. "Umm, nice shape." He slipped an arm around his niece's shoulder. He bit into the cookie. "Yum, quite tasty." He slid a hand down her back. "Here, have a cookie on me."

"We're not supposed to eat any of them," she said.

"But I bought the box, and I'm giving you a cookie. It's not as if you're eating up the profits. Here, have one on me, and let's sit and discuss the possibility of my buying another box from you."

He guided her to a big chair and sat and pulled her down on his lap.

"I do believe this is the best cookie I've ever had," he nibbled. She smiled and nodded and bit into a cookie...

He brushed his lips on her cheek and neck, stroked her hip, and pressed his crotch upon her rump. He moved his hand up, unbuttoned the top of her scout outfit and slid his hand under her bra. She clasped his arm, holding it back.

"Let me stroke and rub you, honey," he breathed in her ear. "I'll buy a box of cookies."

"You will?" she asked.

"Yeah," he answered. He slid his hand onto a breast and began massaging it. "Oh honey, you've got nice little breasts," he rasped. He briskly stroked her titties, rubbing them good. He began rotating his crotch on her rump, pressing his stiffening cock upon her butt.

He went down on her breasts, licking and sucking them. He stroked her legs, running a hand between her thighs.

He tugged at her panties, sliding them down. She grasped his arm and pushed back on it. "Let me lick and suck you, honey. I'll buy another box of cookies."

He slid her panties off, got down on his knees in front of her, pulled her down in the chair and raised her legs and drew them back. He lowered his head between her thighs and began licking.

He slid his tongue up and down, rubbing and lapping her pussy.

She breathed in and out heavily, huffing, almost panting. She clasped his head and raised her pelvis up and moved her cunt around on his mouth.

He moved up on her body, sliding between her legs, pressing his crotch on her pubic hair. He stroked his fat dick up and down on her yoni and rubbed and mashed his balls upon her ass. Then he began pushing the knob of his prick forward--upon her cuntslit.

"Unh unh," she gasped, pulling her pussy back.

He wrapped his arms around her back and tapped his cockhead upon her slit. "Let me do it to you, honey," he rasped. "Another box. I'll buy another. Oh honey, I'll buy three boxes from you."

"Three boxes?" she breathed out.

"Yes, honey, I'll buy three boxes of cookies from you," he panted. "Just let me do it to you." He pushed the head of his peter into her slit, on up to her hymen. "Just let me fuck you!" He strained and heaved and pushed his prick forward, jabbing it against her hymen.

"Unh, ah, unh," he huffed. "You're a virgin, aren't you honey. Ah yes, virgin pussy!"

He kept straining and pushing his dick forward, till he felt the hymen give. "Oh yes!" he hissed as he popped his niece's cherry.

He didn't let up. He kept pushing his cock in, stuffing it into her minty channel. Her quim was so tight, it felt like a vise squeezing his peter.

"Oh god, oh Uncle Dick, oh, it hurts!" she cried. "Oh god, it burns, it hurts so much!"

"It'll only hurt for a minute, honey," he huffed as he dug his prick up her quiff. "Then it'll start feeling so good, you won't want me to ever stop."

He began jamming his dick in her, sawing it back and forth. "Fucking you, honey," he panted."Oh yes, fucking your virgin cunt. Jesus Christ, I'm fucking my fourteen-year-old virgin niece!"

"Oh, unh, ooh, unh!" Jane chuffed and puffed and squirmed and writhed as her uncle lustily fucked her. "Oh baby, welcome to the world of fuck!" he hissed.

He felt the cum churning in his fat balls, felt it gush up. He slid his cock out and rubbed it fast and hard on her yoni. He grunted and groaned as he spewed semen on her pubic hair.

~ ~ ~

Jane was growing concerned. There were only a few days left in the cookie sale, and she still had a couple dozen boxes of cookies she needed to sell.

I could contact the people who have already bought some from me, she thought. They might buy some more--if I explain the situation.

Uncle Dick, she thought. I bet he would buy some more.

Uncle Dick would indeed buy some more from her, and not just cookies...

He sat with his arm around his niece's shoulder. He unzipped his fly and pulled out his peter. "Touch it, honey. Wrap your hand around it and stroke it."

She rubbed his prick, marveling at the warm, silky-smooth firmness of it, and the way it grew in her hand. His dick rose and stiffened, straining and throbbing.

He tugged at her head, pulling it down. "Lick it, honey. Lick and suck it."

"Unh unh," she murmured and tried to pull her head back.

"Do it, honey," he said huskily. "Lick and suck my cock. I'll buy a box of cookies from you."

He pulled her head down and guided his peter to her mouth.

"Ah, that's it," he breathed out heavily. "Open your mouth, get your lips around my prick. Lick and suck it, honey. Oh yes, use your tongue and lips on it. Suck it, baby. Oh yes, suck my dick!"

He slid his cock into her silky warm wet mouth. "Unh--ah!" he gasped, and began sliding it back and forth. "Oh yes, you're sucking it now, honey," he wheezed. "Sucking it good. Ah, your mouth's so warm and wet and silky smooth. Oh baby, you're sucking your uncle's peter. Jesus Christ, yes! I'm fucking your mouth. Ah, I'm fucking my fourteen-year-old niece's mouth!"

He felt his balls swelling and tingling and the juice inside of them swirling and churning. He pulled his prick out of her mouth. He didn't want to shoot his load just yet.

He slid her panties off, turned her over on her hands and knees and got behind her. He lowered his head below her rump and began licking her cunt.

"Oh, ah, umm, ah," Jane cooed in delight as her uncle licked her. His tongue was so thick and wet and he flicked and swirled and rubbed it all over her yoni.

He slid his hands up to her breasts and rubbed and kneaded them as he dug his tongue into her quim and began tongue-fucking her.

"Oh, unh, ah, oh Uncle Dick," Jane gasped with pleasure and moved her pelvis around in little circles and twirled her pussy.

Her uncle moved up on her back, wrapped his arms around her waist and pressed his crotch upon her rump. He pushed his dick forward against her quiff.

She squirmed and whimpered.

"Ah, don't worry, honey," he rasped. "I'm going to buy another box of cookies from you. Ah, I'll buy two boxes from you, honey." He strained forward, pushing his cock into her yoni. "Oh yes! Goddamn, I'll buy three boxes from you!" he huffed and panted as he stuffed his fat prick in her tight quim.

"Unh, ah, oh baby, you've got the tightest pussy I've ever fucked!"

She gasped and bucked and writhed as her uncle screwed her. He huffed and puffed and hunched as he fucked his pretty fourteen-year-old niece.

His balls throbbed and ached; cum churned in them. He slid his peter out of her cunt.

"Oh, Uncle Dick, don't," she moaned in disappointment. "Don't take it out. Stick it back in."

"Unh unh, honey," he gasped and wheezed. "I was just about to cum in your pussy, and I can't do that. Can't take the chance of getting you pregnant."

He lowered his head to her rear end and began kissing and licking it. "Ah, such a sweet soft smooth ass you have," he said. He slid his tongue between her buttcheeks and began licking, swiping and rubbing her rumpcrack.

"Oh, ah, oh Uncle Dick," she breathed out huskily and began rotating her rear end.

He moved a hand up to one of her breasts and rubbed and squeezed it as he slid his middle finger into her quiff and dug his tongue into her asshole and began sliding it back and forth.

"Oh god, unh, ah!" she panted and hunched as he tongue-fucked her ass, rubbed and squeezed her titties and finger-fucked her cunt.

His fat dick throbbed and ached; the sperm swirled in his puffy balls. He moved up onto his niece's back, wrapped his arms around her tummy and pressed his hard cock between her assmounds. He grunted and strained and pushed the knob of his peter upon her rumphole.

Jane gasped and winced and jerked away. Her uncle pulled her back and pushed harder against her asshole. "Oh honey, let me frig you," he wheezed. "I'll buy more cookies from you--I'll buy four boxes, five--goddamn, I'll buy a half-dozen boxes from you!"

"You will? Six boxes--a half-dozen?" Jane breathed out raggedly.

"Yes, a half-dozen," he panted and pushed his hard prick forward, into her rumphole. "Jesus Christ, yes!" he cried as he dug his dick in her ass.

"Oh god, unh, ooh, unh," she gasped as her uncle's cock jammed up her channel.

"Ah yes!" he panted with lust as he screwed his fourteen-year-old niece's rump. "Up your ass, honey, up your sweet virgin ass! Buggerfucking you, frigging your virgin ass, you hot tight sweet-fucking girl scout!"

~ ~ ~

On the final day of the cookie sale, Jane still had a dozen boxes. But Uncle Dick helped her out. He bought all the boxes of cookies she had left. "I've got enough cookies to do me a whole year," he said. "At least until your next cookie sale."

~ ~ ~

He fucked his lovely young niece, pumping his fat prick in her tight cunt. She wrapped her arms and legs around him and hunched her pussy up to meet his thrusts.

"Jesus Christ, it feels so fucking good!" she gasped. "Fuck, Uncle Dick, fuck! Fuck your niece--Goddamn, pump your cock in your niece's cunt!"

~ ~ ~

Needless to say, Jane won the cookie sale and the computer...thanks to Uncle Dick.

The End

Fucked by a black guy...ummmm..two

cindy4u on Interracial Stories

My first black guy experience was actually 2 guys...jerome and jason. I was 16 and on spring break at Panama City Beach. Obviously the trip was about drinking and fun and lots of sex and I was clear before going that it will be a new guy every day. What I did not plan was that this will be my first time with a black boy, in this case two!



The morning started as usual...pushing out a guy out of

Jack's Niece

Diabolos on Incest Stories


Jack was uncertain as to why his brother had asked him to baby-sit his niece Renee since she was almost sixteen and hardly in need of a sitter. When he mentioned this to Frank on the phone his brother merely sighed and explained that his daughter was grounded and required adult supervision so as to make sure she didn’t do anything she wasn’t supposed to. Jack agreed to it as he had nothing else do to that night and he owed his brother a few favors. On the way over to Frank’s house Jack wondered what Renee had done to get herself in such trouble. She always seemed to be a good kid to him. However, he reminded himself, she was getting to that age. She was a real cute girl, too. Jack remember

Read More
ed the last time he’d seen Renee. It’d been about two months ago during a barbeque Frank was having. She’d been swimming with some of the other kids in their pool and Jack couldn’t help but notice how she was filling out the bikini she wore. He felt guilty thinking that way about his niece and suppressed the thought.

Â

He pulled up in front of his brother’s house. When he reached the door Frank was there to open if for him. “Hey, Bro. Thanks a million for doing this on such short notice.” Frank was wearing a suit and tie. They must have big plans indeed.

Â

“No problem, Frankie,” Jack said as he crossed the threshold. “I wasn’t doing much anyway.” He looked around their spacious home. It was always so immaculately kept. It made Jack feel slightly uncomfortable. He saw his sister-in-law approaching. She was an attractive woman but always struck Jack as being rather too frigid. She was wearing an expensive-looking dress. “Hey, Marsha.”

Â

Marsha smiled artificially. Jack got the impression she didn’t much like him. “Hi, Jack. Thanks for coming over. Are you ready, Frank?” Frank nodded as he checked his watch.

Â

“Sorry, we’re running a bit behind,” he explained to Jack. “Help yourself to anything in the fridge. Renee is in her room where she’ll probably stay sulking all night. She’s not to have anyone over or talk on the phone. We’ve taken he cell so you don’t have to worry about that. Thanks again, Bro.” And with that Marsha virtually dragged her husband out the door and to their car. Jack watched them leave, waving as they drove away. Then sighing, he shut the door.

Â

He walked out of the foyer and into the living room, glancing up the staircase toward Renee’s bedroom. He wondered if he should go up there and say hello. He shrugged, deciding she’d come down if she wanted to. He then went to the fridge and helped himself to a beer before sitting himself in front of the television.

Â

A few moments later Jack heard footfalls coming down the stairs. Looking over his shoulder he saw Renee coming down. She wore a tight baby-tee that exposed her flat mid-riff and short, hip-hugging denim cut offs. Her long, thick blond hair was tied in a ponytail. She saw Jack and smiled sweetly at him. Jack waved and smiled back as he actively forced his eyes not to move up and down her slim, pubescent body. “High, Uncle Jack,” she said in a musically high voice.

Â

“Hey, Renee.” Jack returned her smile. “You seem in a good mood for someone’s whose been grounded. You’re dad said you’d be sulking in your room all night.”

Â

Renee laughed and came over to join Jack on the couch. “I would be if they were still here.” She put her long, skinny legs on a footstool and Jack couldn’t help but admire the perfect tan on them or her dainty feet.

Â

“Yeah, well, I guess you’re not getting along with them right now, huh?” Jack took a sip of his beer.

Â

“No, not really,” Renee laughed derisively. She was silent for a moment then turned her eyes to look sidelong at Jack. “Did they tell you what happened?”

Â

Jack quickly looked up into her large, blue eyes as he caught himself staring at Renee’s perky breasts. “No, they didn’t. Must have been pretty bad though,” he said smiling. “You’re a bit too old for a baby-sitter.”

Â

Renee rolled her eyes. “Tell me about it. Sorry you have to be here. You’ve probably got a dozen things you’d rather be doing.”

Â

“Hell, that’s no problem. Besides, we never really spend any time together,” Jack said with a grin.

Â

Renee returned his smile. “That’s true! You’re, like, one of my favorite relatives, too.”

Â

“Yeah? Why’s that?” Jack was genuinely pleased to hear her say so.

Â

“You’re not all stuck up like everyone else in the family. You’ve always treated me like and adult, you know? You’ve never talked down to me or anything.”

Â

Jack smiled. “Well, I think you’re an intelligent young lady, Renee.” She smiled her sweet smile again. Jack felt himself blushing from the praise she’d given him and cleared his throat. “So, anything you wanna do? Watch a movie…order some pizza or anything?”

Â

Renee shrugged her shoulders. “Well, I don’t think I’m supposed to be having any fun.”

Â

“Well, I won’t tell your parents if you don’t, okay?” Jack laughed.

Â

“Okay. How about some of your beer?” She asked innocently.

Â

Jack was speechless for a moment. “What?”

Â

Renee laughed. “I’ve never had any. I want to know what it’s like.”

Â

“Yeah, I’m sure my brother would want me to give beer to his underage daughter!”

Â

“Well, I’m not going to tell him. Would you?” Renee’s blue eyes seemed to pierce Jack’s. “I just want to know what it tastes like. I’d take one of dad’s but I think he like, counts them or something. He’d know.” Jack thought about it. Frank would be pissed but what would it hurt. Hell, she’d probably hate it and spit it out anyway. “Please,” Renee said again as she sat up and edged closer to him, her hands held up in mock pleading.

Â

“Okay.” Jack relented handing the beer to her. “But just one taste, okay?” Renee nodded and took the can. She took a rather large swig and drank it down. Her eyes squinted and her nosed squished up. She opened her eyes and tilted her head.

Â

“It’s not that bad,” Renee said before returning the can to her lips.

Â

“Hey, hey!” Jack reached over to stop her. “I said only one taste!” She smiled as she chugged down a couple more gulps. He wrestled to get the can away from her and she put her hands out against his chest to push him away. In seconds she had drained the can. She smiled at him and held it out to him, letting out a petite belch as she did so. He took the empty can and, feeling its lightness, glared at her. “Never drank beer before, huh?”

Â

She giggled mischievously. “Well, maybe once or twice.” Jack shook his head in disbelief as he set the can down on the coffee table.

Â

“Is that what you got grounded for? Drinking?” He tried not to smile but couldn’t help himself.

Â

Renee shook her head. “No, that wasn’t it.” She laid back on the couch and set her feet up on Jack’s lap. This surprised Jack and he felt himself stiffen at the contact. He laid his hands down awkwardly at his sides. “Guess again.” Renee smiled.

Â

“Uh, okay,” Jack said gingerly. “How about…staying out too late?”

Â

Renee rolled her eyes. “No, that’s not bad enough to get grounded for a month!” She stamped the back of her heels against Jack’s lap. “Think bigger!”

Â

“Okay, okay!” Jack reached down and put his hands on her feet to stop her from kicking him. He absently began rubbing them as he thought. “Did you…steal your mom’s credit card?”

Â

She laughed again. “Good idea, but no.” She looked down at her feet. “That feels good. Do it harder.” Jack was confused and looked down to find himself playing with Renee’s little feet. He glanced at her and began to rub them more earnestly. “Mmm…nice. Guess again.”

Â

Jack was too distracted by giving his fifteen-year-old niece a foot massage that he couldn’t think. “I don’t know…How about…” Jack felt Renee’s feet slowly writhing beneath his hands and realized he was becoming hard. He tried to fight it but his penis was twitching to life and Renee’s heel was an inch away from his crotch.

“Yeah?” Renee prompted her uncle. “Don’t stop,” she protested as Jack’s ministrations faltered. “You’re really good at this, Uncle Jack.”

Â

“Thanks,” Jack said absently as his hard on grew larger. He was afraid the bulge was becoming apparent and he tried to sit up and adjust himself a bit but doing so freed up space for his swelling member and with a shock Jack felt it brushing against Renee’s heel. He glanced over nervously at his niece. If she felt it, she wasn’t saying anything. She didn’t even move her feet away. She was staring at him, that sweet smile on her mouth.

Â

“Come on, I’ll give you one more guess,” Renee said sweetly as she put her arms behind her head, forcing her breasts slightly upward as a result. Suddenly Jack felt Renee’s heel moving slowly back and forth against his erection. He felt his face go crimson as a wave of heat washed over him. His hands were frozen on Renee’s feet and Jack felt as if he were made of stone. It wasn’t accidental; Renee was purposely rubbing against him. The contact made Jack even harder and his cock pulsed, pushing against her heel. She began to rub it up and down his length, languidly and deliberately. “Give up?”

Â

Jack could only nod. His mouth felt as if it were stuffed with cotton.

Â

Renee, still rubbing her uncle’s hard on with her foot, raised up on her elbows and stared into his eyes. “My dad caught my boyfriend fucking me in my bedroom.”

Â

Jack cleared his throat and when he spoke his voice sounded weak to him. “Really?” Renee smiled and nodded her head. She brought the flat of her foot down against Jack’s erection, then her toes. She rubbed them back and forth and delicately ground them against it.

Â

“I’ve seen the way you look at me sometimes, Uncle Jack.” Renee’s huge eyes stared intently into his. “Would you like to fuck me?” Jack sat, dumbfounded, his voice lost once more. Renee took her foot off his hard on and sat up, scooting over next to him. They were shoulder to shoulder as she reached down with her left hand and began rubbing his crotch with it. “God, it feels so much bigger than my boyfriend’s. Can I see it?” Jack closed his eyes and threw his head back in agonized indecision. Taking this as acquiescence, Renee began working the fly of Jack’s jeans. She quickly had them unbuttoned and was unzipping them when Jack looked down at her. Renee then reached beneath the waistband of Jack’s underwear and pulled it down. His cock sprang up into view, causing Renee to gasp in surprise then giggle. “Oh my gosh,” she laughed.

Â

He was fully erect now and Jack’s cock was of average length, around six inches, but its girth was well above average, almost that of the forgotten beer can that lay nearby. The mushroom-shaped head was even fatter. “It’s so big,” Renee breathed. She anxiously reached out and hand and began to caress it, causing Jack to groan and close his eyes. She looked up at him. “Feel nice?” He only nodded as she ran her fingers all over the bulbous head and down the veiny shaft. “Mmm…it’s so hot.” Her questing fingers dug beneath his underwear and felt his balls. She squeezed his large, soft nutsack, causing Jack’s dick to twitch and ooze a drop of pre cum from its tiny slit. “Ohhh, I think he likes that,” Renee murmured. Still caressing his balls, Renee stuck out her tiny, pink tongue and lapped up the fluid like a kitten drinking cream. Jack sighed with pleasure at the touch of his niece’s tongue against his organ and she moaned approvingly as she ran the muscle all over his glossy head.

Â

Jack reached down and grasped the back of his brother’s daughter’s head. He knew he should pull her away and end this but he was overcome by lust that he pushed Renee’s head slowly but forcefully down onto his cock. Renee moaned as she stretched her mouth open to accommodate her uncle’s cock, even so she could only manage to swallow the fat head. Jack began to slowly pump his hips up and down to gently fuck her mouth. Renee made gasping wet noises even as she continued to squeeze Jack’s balls. With her free hand she wrapped her fingers as best she could around the shaft and began to slowly pump her fist up and down.

Â

“Oh…oh, Renee. Oh, baby that’s so good,” Jack muttered. This fifteen-year old girl was giving better head than most thirty-something women Jack had been with. He grabbed her ponytail and began pulling on it, forcing her head up so his the wet head of his prick popped out, then pushing her head back down forcing it once more into her eager mouth. Jack began to push his cock up and down faster. He felt a tickling in his balls and he knew he was going to cum in seconds. Renee grasped the root of his shaft and squeezed, almost painfully hard. She withdrew her mouth from his knob with a slobber.

Â

“You’re not cumming yet, are you?” It was less a question than a statement. Wiping her wet mouth with the back of her hand, Renee stood up. Jack watched, wide-eyed, as she undid her shorts and slid them down her slender legs. He was a bit surprised she wore no panties. As Renee stood upright again Jack noticed she’d shaved her pubic hair. He could see a trace of her small, pink lips as Renee put on knee on the armrest next to Jack then placed her foot on the cushion on his other side. Raising her self up, she offered herself to his mouth. Jack felt her smooth pubic mound against his upper lip and nose and was assaulted by her intoxicating scent. His tongue instinctively shot from his mouth and began to explore her tight, young hole. She gasped as he quickly found her clit and began to gently lick it. His arms felt like lead as he raised them to cup her small, rounded ass and push her against his hungry mouth.

Â

Renee placed her hands on the back of Jack’s head and began clutching at his hair as she slowly rubbed herself up and down against her uncle’s chin and mouth. She threw her head back and moaned softly. “Oh yes…oh that’s perfect. Mmmm,” she moaned ecstatically. Thus encouraged, Jack licked harder and pushed his tongue deeper inside her. He’d never tasted such a sweet pussy in all his life. She was dripping wet. Jack could feel her juices slowly traveling down his. With a squeal Renee pushed away from Jack and he opened his eyes in protest. She looked down at him, her blue eyes hooded and filled with lust. “I want to feel that fat cock of yours,” she whispered as she sunk herself down and straddled Jack’s lap.

Â

He felt her wetness and heat pressing against the tip of his engorged prick. She reached down between her legs and grabbed it, steadying him as forced herself slowly down onto it. She braced herself with her other hand by placing it against his broad chest. Her face was a caricature of perfect concentration as she struggled to force her small hole over Jack’s thickness. Then, with a sudden movement, his dick head penetrated her vagina and she squealed in surprise and delight. Jack exhaled, forcing himself not to cum at the sudden sensation. It was so tight and hot. “Ohhh…it’s soo big,” Renee breathed. She bit her lip as she began to slowly ride up and down, gradually forcing the rest of Jack’s pulsing cock inside her. She then placed her other hand against his chest and gasped for a few moments before gyrating her ass back and forth. “Oh…oh…oh…that feels good.”

Â

Jack silently agreed. His breath was coming in sharp rasps and he couldn’t find the will to speak. He placed his hands against her thighs, gripping them tightly. He didn’t move, letting Renee do the work. He was afraid that if he moved he wouldn’t be able to stave of his orgasm. As she adjusted to his bulk, Renee began to move up and down quicker, her breathing became harsher and her occasional squeals more shrill. Jack stared at her breasts, still hidden beneath her tight shirt. He wanted to see them. He slowly lifted his hands up and pulled her shirt up over her small bra. He reached with shaking fingers beneath the cups of the bra and pulled them down, revealing Renee’s pert titties. Her nipples were hard, large and puffy. Jack tugged at them, one between each thumb and forefinger. This caused Renee to moan and buck her hips harder. He continued to squeeze one nipple while he leaned down and took the other into his mouth. He rolled his tongue all over the nugget of hard flesh, then sucked and bit it gently.

Â

This seemed to send Renee over the edge, she was humping him widly now. She was nearly screaming and he legs began to quiver. “I’m cumming…oh I’m cumming, Uncle Jack! Fuck me! Fuck me!” Jack pushed himself up and down, forcing his cock even deeper inside the girl. He felt his balls swelling. He was going to cum and this time he wouldn’t be able to stop it. He clutched her ass as Renee balled his shirt into her fists. Her whole petite frame shook as she screamed out loud. Jack groaned and felt his toes cramping as he felt himself cumming, shooting his wad into his niece’s bunching and pulsating pussy. He trusted up and down with each ejaculation, causing Renee to cry out even louder.

Â

In a few seconds it was over. Renee lay against her uncle, his cock wilting slowly inside her dripping cunt, both covered in sweat and breathing deeply. Jack was lazily stroking and patting her back. Her head was nestled in his shoulder. The reality of what had just happened suddenly hit Jack. He’d just fucked his fifteen-year old niece. A teenager less than half his own age. His brother’s daughter. A girl who he’d held as a baby. He wondered what was going through her head. Was she going to freak out? “You okay?” Jack asked at length. Renee raised her head up and looked into his face, smiling her sweet smile.

Â

“Hell yeah,” she said. “That was the best fuck I’ve ever had.”

Feel free to contact me at sardonicus1313@yahoo.com and tell me what you think!

My Baby Girl and her Friend

final_destiny on Incest Stories

I’m sitting on the couch in front of the TV when I hear the front door open.  “Daddy,” comes my baby girl’s voice.  I turn off the TV and sit up as my little Samantha comes in.  She’s dressed in her school uniform; plaid skirt that comes just above her knees, white blouse, blonde hair pulled back in a pony tail.  She’s hugging some of her books to her chest as she leads a second uniformed girl in with her.  “This is Rebecca,” she says to the redhead behind her.  “She came over to play.”

            “Hello, Rebecca,” I say, standing. 

Read More
Rebecca’s a little taller than Samantha, but a she’s not as full.  Even though Samantha’s in the 8th grade, her chest is really developing.  Even with her loose blouse that she never tucks in, you can tell her pert little breasts are on their way to being very nice.  Rebecca, though, looks still pretty flat-chested.

            “Sam,” Rebecca says, half as a whisper.  “Can I use the bathroom?”

            “Yeah, it’s in there,” she said, pointing to the door just inside the hallway.  Rebecca rushes off quietly, leaving me with my little girl.  She turns and looks up at me with her pretty smile and asks, “What’re you watching?”

            I turn the TV back on and the porno I was watching returns to the screen.  A big man has his dick in a girl’s ass while another eats her out.  Samantha inhales, her smile growing.  I sit back down on the catch and Samantha joins me.  “So,” she asks after a moment, “do you like her?”

            “I do,” I say, playing with Samantha’s haircut.

            “Can we?”

            “Of course,” I laugh.

            Samantha squeals and leaps up and goes running into the kitchen.  I sit back and turn off the movie, switching to the regular channels.  A second later, Rebecca comes out of the bathroom, her skirt swishing around her legs.  I look at the white stockings she’s wearing before smiling at her.  “Want to watch something?”

            “I’m fine,” Rebecca says with an awkward smile.  She sits down on the far side of the couch from me.  I sit back, content.  I have to cross my legs to keep my growing anticipation from being obvious.

            I turn it on some cartoons and Rebecca seems fine with it.  A moment later, Samantha comes in with two glasses of orange juice.  As she enters, she winks at me, then looks to the glasses.  I smile, knowing that they’re both laced with a little something we like to add in situations like this.

            Rebecca must be thirsty because she drinks the orange juice quickly.  Samantha notices and laughs to me.  Before the next commercial, both girls are already starting to fidget.  By the time the show comes back on, Rebecca’s rolling her legs against each other.  I recognize the reaction.  She’s looking around, unable to tell why she’s feeling this way.  Hell, she’s young enough, she might not even know what she’s feeling.

            Samantha, though, is perfectly comfortable.  She widens her legs a bit and starts to breath hard as she rubs her skirt in between her thighs.  A moment later, she turns to me and asks, “Can you put the movie back on?”

            I smile and look at Rebecca.  She’s flushed, she’s so turned on.  I hit the remote and the porn comes on.  Rebecca looks absolutely stunned, but Samantha just starts rubbing herself more.  A moment and or two and she gets up from the center of the couch and gets on her knees in front of me.  Rebecca is still, watching, mesmerized.  My little girl undoes my belt and pulls open my pants to reveal my throbbing dick.  She strokes it a few times before she kisses the tip.  Her saliva drips down the shaft and she goes to work.  Letting her tongue proceed her lips, she takes the entire tip into her mouth, then a bit of the shaft, then a bit more.  She’s only able to get about halfway down before I can start to feel her throat.  She starts to bob up and down on me, her ponytail going wild.  I lean back and moan, relaxing.

            After several moments, she turns and looks at Rebecca.  “Wanna try?” she asks girlishly.  Rebecca shakes her head frantically, but Samantha just shrugs and goes back to sucking.  I watch Rebecca out of the corner of my eye.  The sounds of suction and slippery flesh-on-flesh rubbing is driving her made.

            Samantha pulls off a second time, letting her lips cause a ‘pop’ when she does.  She looks at Rebecca, again offering my dick to her.  Rebecca looks on the verge of accepting.  But Samantha doesn’t wait.  She stands up and turns her back to me.  Watching the movie as much as much as anything, she pulls her skirt up to reveal the garter belt she wears instead of stockings and no underwear.  Rebecca’s floored by the sight, but not by what happens next.

            Samantha slides backwards onto my dick.  At first it looks like I’ll split her in half as she moans with delight.  But she slowly sits down on my lap, my dick reaching up into her.  She cries out before she starts to rise up.  She lowers again, then starts to repeat.  Over and over, she goes up and down, sliding on me.

            I reach up to my little girl’s pony tail and wrap it up in may hand, pulling her head back.  She starts to rub her tiny, pink little clit as she bobs up and down.  She moans and cries.  I look at Rebecca and she looks at the action like a starving child staring at a cake.

            Finally, Samantha moans loudly and slumps off of me.  She lands on the floor, on her hands and knees, and turns to me.  She reaches up with her tiny little mouth and starts to suck my dick dry of her juices.  She keeps playing with herself, slipping her fingers occasionally inside.  She finally pops her lips off my dick and looks at Rebecca.  She offers her friend her fingers and asks, “Want to taste it?”

            Rebecca, who looks she’s about to pass out, she’s so wound up, pants for a second.  She looks at me, then Samantha.  Slowly, hesitantly, she slides off the couch on her hands and knees and leans forward.  She opens her mouth and Samantha slides her fingers inside her mouth.  Rebecca seems to whimper at the taste for a moment, then starts to suck on my baby girl’s fingers.  Samantha smiles and starts to push her fingers in deeper until she’s up to her knuckles.  After several moments, she draws her fingers out, slips them inside herself a few times before returning them to Rebecca’s mouth.  This time, Rebecca leans forward, greedily swallowing Samantha’s fingers.  My little girl, as her friend sucks her fingers, starts to suck me again.  Again, I lean back and admire the two little girls sucking away.

            Samantha popped off of me and pulled her fingers from Rebecca’s lips, even as Rebecca leaned forward.  Samantha smiled, glancing at the movie, then she sat up.  She shimmed across the living room floor on her knees.  Rebecca started to stand, but Samantha put her hand on her back, keeping her on her hands and knees.  She came around and reached under Rebecca’s skirt, pulling her bee-print underwear down.  Rebecca gasped, but before she could protest, my little girl had her fingers inside her friend.

            On her hands and knees, Rebecca started to gasp and whimper.  She cried out as Samantha ran her fingers in and out, over and over.  She leaned down, lapping at the girl’s precious little mound, making Rebecca cry out almost immediately.

            As Rebecca sat with her pretty little face buried in the carpet, her hips in the air, her skirt falling down from her legs to expose her thigh-high stockings, my little girl stood again and came over to me.  She pulled her skirt up again and straddled me.  I sat back and let my little girl start to bounce up and down on me.  I reach up and start to undo her little white blouse, revealing her light blue bra.  I undo the snaps as she keeps reach up and down on me and toss the bra to the floor.  Rebecca stares at her breasts, then looks down at her own shirt.  She looks at me and smile.  Nervously, she undoes her own shirt, letting it slide off.  She’s got a tight little bra that once she lets go, two beautiful breasts pop out.  They’re not as big as my little girl’s, but they’re bigger than I expected.

            My little cums again on me and slides off.  She drops to her knees and angles my dick towards Rebecca.  “Give it a try,” she offers.  Rebecca stares at my dick and looks at me.  I smile as friendly as I can.  Nervously again, she crawls towards my dick on her hands and knees.  She opens her mouth and closes her eyes like she’s getting ready to eat a spoonful of nasty vegetables.

            Once she kisses the tip of my dick and tastes my little girl’s juices, she starts to lick my dick.  My little girl watches for a moment, then she starts to lick as well.  I smile as these two beautiful little girls slather my dick with attention, lapping up the juices.

            Finally, my little girl sits up.  She crawls on her knees into the middle of the floor and kneels down.  She puts her face in the carpet, her hips open to me.  I look down at Rebecca as she sucks the tip of my dick.  I take her sweet red hair and gently guide her off.  Leaving her by the couch, I get down on my knees behind my little girl.  I position myself and push in.

            Her head thrusts up and she cries out.  I start to slapping my hips against hers as I push into her again and again.  I look over my shoulder at Rebecca and she’s mesmerized.  I slow down and start guiding Samantha back and before long, I’m standing still while she’s pounding herself against me.  Sliding back again and again, her body shoves against mine, making her cry out each time.

            A little bit and my little girl pulls off.  Her knees are weak from coming so much.  She goes over to Rebecca and kisses her straight on.  Rebecca’s stunned, but quickly gets into it.  The two girls rub breasts as they kiss.  My dick keeps getting harder as I watch.

            Samantha pulls away and lies back.  She smiles at me and opens her mouth.  I smile and lean forward over her, positioning my dick over her lips.  With Rebecca in front of me, I slide inside my baby girl’s mouth.  I reach her throat and gently push in.  I drive myself all the way to the base, her lips kissing my body.  I draw out again slowly, and push in again, this time a hair faster.

            As I continue, moving a bit quicker each time, I take Rebecca’s hair and pull her towards me.  I gently push her face to my daughter’s chest and she gets it.  She starts sucking and kissing my daughter’s nipples as I move back and forth, sliding in and out of my baby girl’s throat.  The soft gurgling sounds of joy make me move that much faster.

            I start to buck, to really take off, and I pull out.  I grab the back of Rebecca’s head, startling her, and pull her face in front of me.  She squeals fearfully as I jerk my dick repeatedly, spraying cum onto her face.  She tries to turn away but I cover her chin and lips with creamy white cum.

            Panting a bit, Samantha sits up as I slump back.  She leans close to Rebecca, their breasts pushing against each other again.  She kisses her friend, spreading cum over her lips.  She slides her tongue inside and spreads cum into Rebecca’s mouth.  I see both girls swallow and that’s enough.  They both start going.  Samantha licks cum off Rebecca’s face and Rebecca sucks it from her tongue.  They kiss, saturated in my release.

            Sighing with delight, Samantha sits back, her breasts jiggling as she does.  I watch Rebecca stare at her chest and smile.  The thin redhead looks at us both, still blushing, still unsure how to respond.  “Do you guys do this all the time?” she asks.  I laugh and my little girl giggles.  “Can I,” she ventures nervously, “Can I come over again?”

Daddy and I

Jolly1 on Incest Stories







>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>Daddy and I

>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>>By Jolly1



Hi my name is Casey and now I am 25 years old. I am sort of a tomboy,
and I always have been. I am an only child and my father wanted a boy,
but he ended up with me, a girl with slim hips and very little breasts.



Dad never let on that he didn’t want a girl; he was always very good to
me. As I grew up we became sort of buddies, I did everything with him.
When he worked on the car I was there to hand him wrenches. If he
worked on the house I handed him tools and helped car
Read More
ry anything he was
working on. Soon I think he forgot I was a girl, because we went
fishing, hiking and even target shooting together.



I worshiped my dad; in my eyes he could do no wrong. When Mom tried to
dress me up in a dress and frilly undies, dad would step in and tell
her to leave me alone. They had many a fight over me, but dad always
won out. Mom would say it was not proper for me to hang around dad all
the time; I should be out with girls my own age. Dad would tell her I
should be happy and do what I wanted.



Things suddenly changed between dad and I, he had taken me on a fishing
and camping weekend when I was 14. Everything was lovely and we caught
enough fish for dinner, so I decided to take a dip in the lake. I
entered the cold water in my shorts and tee shirt; I had never taken to
wearing a bra, because my breast were almost flat. Needless to say
being 16 years old, I did not have a lot of boys from school chasing
after me. Dad called out to me after a while and told me to come in; it
was time to head back to camp to clean the fish before dark. It was
when I got out of the water that I noticed dad staring at my almost
flat chest. The cold water had made my nipples stiff and poke out and
the water had made my shirt translucent.



Dad hardly said a word as we hiked back to camp, when we got there I
went to our tent and changed into a dry shirt. I felt funny about the
way he had looked a me, it made me feel kind of strange. When I got to
the fire, dad had already cleaned the fish and had them in a pan over
the fire. So I pulled up a camp chair and sat across the fire from dad,
who tried his best not to look at me. I though he was mad at me for
something I did and tried to talk to him, but he answered me with short
and to the point answers to every question I asked him.



I offered to clean up the dishes and dad went to our tent to change his
clothes. That is when I noticed him, staring at me from outside the
tent as I bent over and cleaned the plates and pan. He appeared to be
drinking something from a bottle, which was not like dad. Yea he drank
a beer or two, he had even shared a beer with me, but I had never seen
him drink hard liquor. He came toward me and sat at the fire, but his
eyes never left my body.



When I finished cleaning up, I went to sit by the fire also. Dad
offered me the bottle to take a drink, I took it and gulped a big
mouthful. My mouth was on fire and it burned all the way down to my
stomach. I coughed and sputtered as I handed the bottle back to him, he
just laughed and said his little girl was growing up. Dad never called
me his little girl before; he always referred to me as his buddy. I did
not know what was going on but I felt warm all over. After a while he
said it was time to turn in, so I went first to the tent to get ready
for bed. I removed my shorts but left my tee shirt on, crawled onto the
camping cot and covered up with my blanket. I called out to dad to say
I was in bed so he could get to bed.



I pretended to have my eyes closed, but I must admit I peeked as dad
removed his shirt and shorts and got into his cot with just his boxer
shorts on. I must have drifted off to sleep, because I came awake after
hearing a noise and just stayed still and kept my eyes closed. Then I
felt the blanket being lifted off of me as the cool night air touched
my body. I cracked my eyes and saw dad standing there looking at me.
After a few minutes he reached inside his boxers and pulled out his
penis. I had seen it before, because when he went to pee I had snuck a
peek. But I did not remember it being that big, and he started to
stroke it. Damn my dad was jerking off while looking at me. I shuddered
even though I was feeling warm all over. Seeing him like that made me
feel warm and funny between my legs.



Of course I knew about sex, but I never though I would turn anyone on
much less my daddy. I had to say my little virgin pussy was wet as dad
stroked his penis faster and faster. I tried not to move or make a
sound, because I was afraid he would stop, and for some reason I did
not want him to stop. As he kept doing it, my pussy was getting wetter
and wetter, my panties were soaked and I felt like my cunt was on fire.
Just when I thought I could stand it no more, something hot hit my
face, he was moaning and cumming and jerking off faster and faster. But
when his cum first hit my face I sat up, he did not even notice as his
eyes were closed and his hand kept pumping.



When he was finished he finally opened his eyes and seen me sitting
there with his cum running down my face and shirt. He just cried out he
was sorry and ran from the tent. I got up and slipped on my shorts and
wiped my face ( I have to admit I did take my finger and wipe some of
the cum with it and put it in my mouth) with my towel and walked out of
the tent to try to talk to my dad.



I found him sitting by the fire pit; the fire had been put out before
we went to bed, with his face in his hands crying. I went over to him
and put my arm around his shoulders and tried to tell him it was all
right. He just kept saying he was so sorry and it must have been the
whiskey he had been drinking that made him do it. I told him it did not
matter that I knew he would never hurt me. That I still loved him and
always would, no matter what. He slowly looked up at me and I pulled
his head to my chest and stroked his hair as he cried against my chest.




I began to feel warm again as I held him, I could smell his after shave
even though he had not shaved since we had left. I felt his beard
stubble snagging my shirt, but nothing seemed to matter, but that we
were together.



Dad finally stood up and wrapped his strong arms around me, in a hug I
had never experienced before. Sure dad had hugged me before but it was
always a quick hug and release like you would hug your best buddy when
he caught a big fish or something. This was different as he pulled me
against his body tightly and put his head on my shoulder. This was a
long hug and I did not want it to ever end. He moved his head and
looked into my eyes, he again to me he was sorry and kissed my
forehead. But he did not stop, he kissed my eyes, nose, both of my
cheeks, then he brushed his lips across my lips. I must have moaned
because then I felt his lips fasten to mine and his tongue darted into
my mouth.



My knees felt like rubber and dad was holding me up against his body. I
could feel his hardness against my belly. The kiss seemed to last
forever, and when he removed his lips from mine, I felt empty inside. I
said dad, but he cut me off saying hush little one everything will be
all right. I felt his lips on my neck and move up to nibble on my ears,
his hand were on my butt pressing me against him. I was having trouble
breathing and I must say my pussy was soaking my panties.



Dad sat down on the camp chair and pulled me onto his lap. He started
kissing me again and as he pulled me to him I noticed the hair on his
chest tickled my arms. He started moving his hands all over my body, I
felt him caress my breasts and rub my legs. His kisses were becoming
more demanding, as his hand went up under my tee shirt and rubbed my
bare breast. My nipples were rock hard and he played with them,
pinching them and pulling on them. I felt his hard penis grinding
against my ass, and he grabbed the tail of my shirt and pulled it off
of me. I know I must have been wetting his boxers as my pussy was
flowing like crazy.



I felt dad’s hairy chest rub against my hard nipples and his hands
pulling down my shorts. I lifted my butt to help him, and he tossed
them onto the other chair. His hand was between my legs now and I had
my arms around his neck trying to hang on. I felt his finger trace the
lips of my pussy lightly, then a little firmer pushing my soaked
panties into the crevice of my pussy lips. Then an animal growl came
from my dad and he grabbed my panties and ripped them from my body. I
shook in excited fear, as his fingers went where no other man’s fingers
had been.



He found my clit and I thought I would pass out from the sheer pleasure
I was receiving from my dad. He would stroke my pussy from my ass to my
clit and sometimes dip into that forbidden hole. I bucked and twisted
and never noticed his penis had escaped thru the hole in his boxers. He
bent and fastened his lips to my nipples and sucked and chewed them
until I thought I would pass out. Then he put an arm under my legs and
around my shoulders and stood up carrying me to the tent.



He laid my naked body on my cot and crawled on top of me. He continued
to kiss my face and move slowly down my body stopping at my nipples
again. As he sucked each nipple I felt him rise up and take his hands
and spread my legs. After they were open and hanging over the edges of
the cot, he settled back down on top of me, his hard penis pressed up
against my belly. In my mind I knew what was happening to me but I did
not want what I was feeling to ever stop. Then I felt dad slide down
and kiss my belly stopping to lick my bellybutton, and then kiss the
top of my legs. His kisses continued down the top of my legs to my
knees then started back up the inside of my legs. All I could do was
squirm and moan, daddy, daddy.



His lips soon touched upon my wet pussy and I almost jumped off of the
cot. I felt his tongue spread the lips of my hot pussy and lick me from
my ass to my clit. I wrapped my fingers in his hair as he sucked and
nibbled on my clit, and then move to the entrance to my pussy. His
tongue pushed in deep and I squirmed and pulled his head closer trying
to get him deeper. He lapped up my flowing juices, and moved back to my
clit. Then he did something strange, with my clit in his mouth he
started humming. Oh my god, I flooded the cot with my cum, and went
slack.



Daddy slowly crawled back up on top of me, a big grin on his face. He
kissed my lips and let me taste my juices, then asked me if his little
girl liked that. What could I say to him, like that, I loved it. I
again felt him rise up but this time his hand went between out bodies
and I felt something hard and hot rub my pussy. Dad rubbed his penis up
and down my wet slit hitting my clit on the up strokes and making me
shiver. Then I felt it at the entrance to my hot hole, just a little
pressure at first then I felt the big head of his penis slip into me.
Dad stayed still and let me get used to the feel of it, while looking
into my eyes. Then he started moving in little in and out motions until
more of him was lodged in me, when he came against my cherry, he
stopped and asked if I was ready.



I was not prepared, but I wanted to feel all of him in me, so I
whispered yes. Dad pulled almost all the way out of me, then with a
powerful lunge ripped my cherry apart with his huge penis. I felt a
white hot searing pain and screamed at the top of my lungs. Dad just
stayed still and kissed the tears flowing from my eyes. I heard him say
he was sorry little one, as he slowly started to make slow shallow
pumping movements inside of me. It hurt and burned for a while but I
guess I had been super wet and soon it was feeling pretty good.



In a little while it was feeling great, dad was pumping faster and
faster and his balls were slapping against my ass. He held me in a
tight embrace and kept telling me how much he loved me and what a great
little girl I was. My ass was now thrusting up to meet his, I had my
legs wrapped around his waist and my hands were clawing his back. I had
never felt anything like this and came two or three times, when I felt
dad’s penis swell and he tried to push it thru me, then I could feel
him shooting rope after rope of his hot cum in me. I must have passed
out from pure pleasure. Because when I woke up dad was gone, I jumped
up and ran for the flap of the tent. Naked and peeking slowly of the
flap I saw dad making coffee over a newly started fire.



I returned to my cot and looked down and saw it was covered in blood
and cum stains, that is when I noticed my pussy was also covered in the
same stains and the hair on it was kind of stiff. I took a towel and
poured some water from a canteen and started cleaning my poor sore
pussy up. When I was done I slid on some shorts and a tee shirt and
went out to get some coffee. Dad was smiling and came over and gave me
a big kiss and asked me how his little girl was this morning. As I took
the coffee he offered me I smiled back at him and said just great.



As I sat at the fire, while dad was cooking breakfast, he said he
needed to talk to me. I said ok dad and he started telling me about him
and mom. He said while he loved mom very much, she had lost interest in
sex a few years ago. So he had relieved himself with his hand since
then, that is until he saw my breasts and hard nipples when I came out
of the water yesterday from my swim. He said that he had never intended
to make love to me, but laying on the cot so close to me and trying to
jerk off quietly, that he just could not get the picture out of his
head of my breasts an nipples.



He had gotten up and just intended to look at me again, he just could
not resist. Then some how he had started jerking off while looking down
at me. He was going to stop before he came, but just lost control. Then
when I came out of the tent last night and hugged him telling him it
was all right, he lost control again. That what he did was wrong, and
that when we got home he was going to tell mom about it. She would most
likely have him arrested and jailed as a child molester, but that it
was the right thing to do.



I stared at him dumb founded, I did not want to lose my daddy. And what
we did last night was wonderful. I wanted to do it more, and I only
wanted to do it with him. So that is what I told him, and I told him
not to tell mom. He looked down at me with tears in his eyed and asked
me if that is the way I really felt. I jumped up and flung my arms
around him and started kissing the tears from his eyes as he had done
mine last night. I told him I loved him and he could do it to me any
time he wanted, because I loved it and want to make love to him.



I guess breakfast burned, as he carried me back to the tent.



Daddy and I are still best buddies and always will be. I think my daddy was glad he had a girl.



The end











This was my first attempt at a dad and daughter story---please let me
know how I did. And do you thing I should write more of them?





Bandit's knot for me.

knotter on Animal Stories

Let me tell you about myself right off. My name is Daisy. (my dad says it’s because I reminded him a flower when I was born) I’m not to hip on it, but, what are ya gonna do? Mid twenties (+-) and out on my own since college. 5’ 7”, 130 pounds, light brown hair, 36C, 26, 36. I’m doing OK in the looks department. Bi, so is my ‘boy’friend, Alex. Lately, though, he seemed to like the dick more than he liked me. There ya have it.

I met my friend, Susan, when I was in college. She always had her own place, while I was in the dorm. Her and I had hooked up on many occasions when the pickin’s weren’t so hot on the local scene. She had the sweetest tasting pussy.

She had always talked about gettin

Read More
g a dog as she had had one growing up. I didn’t know poop from dogs and was a little interested as it seemed to be always on her mind. I like animals, but was never able to have one. We would talk, and I would find things out about raising them from pups, how to make them obey commands and what-not. During our senior year, Susan acquired a male Bull Mastiff/Great Dane mix as a pup, Bandit. Since I was around the house quit a bit, Bandit and I got to be pretty good friends. Susan taught me how to control him when we would go for walks, the commands she used, how the leash was a tool, along with gentle words to keep him calm. I was learning a lot with her guidance. As he grew up, I was amazed at his size.

“Teach them young and they will be a companion for their life”, was what she always told me. After a year or so, I asked her why she never had Bandit fixed. “No way!” was her response. “Castrate a dog and they turn into wimps. I don’t want a wimpy dog! I want something with balls I can control.”

After college, we both stayed around the city taking jobs. Susan was moving up a little quicker than me and needed to go out of town every now and again, asking if I could watch Bandit while she was gone. I would say yes, and bring Bandit to my place. I liked having him with me. When I would go to the park, for a walk, I felt ‘safe’. Alex was never happy when I had Bandit. Bandit was none to fond of Alex.

I was at Susan’s one day and she told me she was moving to Idaho. She had applied for a position in the company. Idaho??? She asked if I could keep Bandit for a few months until she found a place big enough to let him roam. The day came and she left Bandit with me, saying goodbyes to him and me. Alex was OK with the idea of me watching him as Bandit seemed to like him.

Getting used to having Bandit around full time, for more than just a few days, took quite a toll on my social life. When I would go out, those I knew would ask me where I had been hiding and soon all knew I was ‘puppy-sitting’ for Susan. I spent more and more time at home and found the company of Bandit was, for the most part, better that that of my ‘friends’.

I was out walking Bandit in the park, one day, and a girl, a few years older than me walking a Black Lab, came up, introduced herself as Jodi, and started asking me about Bandit. The dogs were doing the usual dog thing, sniffing butts, and I told her I was sitting the dog for a friend while she got settled in another town, how I had known the dog since he was a pup…blah, blah, blah.

“He minds so well”, she said. “I have seen you here before with him. I’ll bet you have to keep a tight leash on him when the girl dogs are around. He’s got quite a set on him. A girl would be happy to have a package like that between her legs.” We talked for a few minutes longer, and went our separate ways Jodi saying maybe we could walk our dogs together in the future. Thinking about what she had said got me a little curious about Bandit’s privates. I had watched him pee and all that, but never thought about dogs having sex. It was one area that Susan had never told me about. Oh…I knew how they did it, but never saw the real thing. Walking back to the house I let Bandit roam in front of when I could and really started to look at his sack.

It WAS huge, I just had never noticed. It hung down 5-6 inches and held two huge balls. When he would turn side-ways to snoop around at something, I could see the sheath that held his dog cock. It seemed the length of my forearm. Well, why not, I thought, big dog made to mate with a big dog equates a big cock. (unlike big guys, by the way) I decided when we got home I was going to check him out and see what was what. My mind was having a tough time with this. I was actually thinking of Bandit in kind of a sexual way.

Home at last. Unleashing Bandit, he went to his favorite spot in the middle of the living room, plopped down on the floor and started to snooze. Dogs can fall asleep at the drop of hat, a quality I found perplexing. Must be the ‘no stress in my life’ thing. Eat, walk, poop. How tough is that! After having a little supper, I went to Bandit, sat next to him and started to pet him. I got him to roll onto his back, rubbing his belly, getting closer to his sheath. As I ran my hand over it he tensed just a bit, but I was talking to him, keeping him calm. It might have been my imagination, but I swear I heard him give a little doggie sigh. Moving my hand back further I took one of his balls in my hand. It filled my palm. I gently squeezed each one, then back up to stroke his sheath. Bandits cock started to emerge from inside, it’s pointed tip a pinkish-red.

His cock continued to grow, blood pumping into it, head rolled to one side, tongue lolling out of his mouth. Even his tongue was big. One hand stroking his sheath, the other softly massaging his balls more cock emerged, big around as my wrist. 7-8-9 inches, fluid starting to run from the end. I realized my pussy was getting wet looking at, playing with this huge thing. It HAD to stop growing at some point, I thought. I moved my hand away from his balls and caught some fluid in my hand, rubbing it along Bandit’s penis, getting it slicker than it already was, my other moving up to join as that was the only way to encompass the whole thing, noticing it was hotter than my hands, keeping his dog dick wet with his pre-come. I stroked until a his full 11-12 inch, bright red cock was outside his sheath.

I couldn’t believe what I was doing!!! I was jacking-off a dog, but I wasn’t able to stop. My pussy was soaking my panties, Bandit’s fluid running from the tip of his huge cock. His haunches jerking with each of my strokes. I leaned down, taking the tip into my mouth, tasting his pre-come. It was salty, but not to. My mind screamed at me, ‘WHAT ARE YOU DOING!!! YOU’RE SUCKING A DOG!!! STOP!!!’ I couldn’t. Taking 3 or 4 inches into my mouth, stroking the rest with my hands, his fluid filling my mouth, me swallowing it down. I looked past my hands and saw a ball forming at the base of his penis. As I pumped Bandits 12 inches, the ball grew bigger, bigger, until it was the size of a big baseball. ‘What the hell was this all about”, I thought.

I took my mouth away from Bandits cock, swallowing (finally, my mind said) still tasting his fluid on my lips, looking closer at this ball. Still stroking with one hand the other moving around his knot. (found out later it was called that) This must be here to keep him from going to deep into his mate. (WOW, was I naïve) I stopped what I was doing, my mind getting a bit of control, stood and left poor Bandit in a state of full excitement. He growled at me as I walked away, I thought ’That has never happened‘. Wet, excited, my pussy flowing, I went to the bedroom and masturbated into an intense orgasm, thinking all time about Bandit’s huge cock. I had NEVER had a guys meat that big in my hands.

Bandit and I spent the next couple weeks out walking in the park. We met Jodi a couple of times and she told me of an off-leash “rover run”. We went there and let the dogs go. It was good for both of them to get to stretch their legs. We got to know each other better and I even spent a night with her, but that’s another story. She would hint around at how big Bandit was , but never really came out and said anything.

Alex had not been around to much lately and I was really starting to get horny, feeling the need to need to get dicked hard. I came home from work one afternoon, got into my robe and popped a rental porn movie in the player (yes, guys, we watch them, also) intent on playing with myself, coming and then heading off to bed. The movie progressed predictably and I wasn’t getting the satisfaction I wanted, but I WAS hot, my pussy wet from my hand. I started to think of Bandit’s big dog meat, it had never been far from my mind since the day I had it in my mouth, pumping a full 12 inch cock, his juice filling my cheeks, swallowing it and that REALLY started my juices flowing. His cock was SO big! As if he could sense what was on my mind, Bandit stood up and walked to me. His snout sniffed once at my pussy and his long tongue snaked out, licking across my soaked fingers, getting a taste of me. That was all it took. His nose pushed my hand away, his long rough tongue replacing it, licking my cunt, running across my clit, each time bringing me closer, diving deep into me to get all of the juice flowing from it. I held his head to me, Bandit licking into me. I looked down and saw his cock growing from his sheath. It FELT SO GOOD! His tongue inside, his nose pressed against my cit, I jerked once, twice, thrice and came, moaning in the release of my body…he didn’t stop, taking me over the edge again. I had never been eaten this deeply. His cock was at full attention. I could see it swinging beneath him. I wanted that huge thing inside me. I pushed his head away from my crotch, grabbed his collar and led him to my bedroom, knowing that he would need the height of the bed to get behind me. I got on the edge if the bed, my ass up, robe up over my hips and called Bandit to me.

He was jumping around a bit, not quite sure what to do. I guess Susan had not taught him this maneuver. I got his front legs up on the bed, his big dick swaying underneath, spraying pre-come at me, my mind reeling, knowing I was going to take this thing inside me. I was going to let a dog fuck me. I was presenting myself to him, wanting his big cock in me. I got back on my knees under him, his haunches searching, his dick hitting everything but where I wanted it. I reached back grabbed that big piece of dog cock and guided it to me. Bandit’s cock tip entered me, the cream from my cunt running down the insides of my legs. I had never been this wet, this wanton. Bandit figured out what was up. His bitch wanted to be mated, and moved forward, DRIVING his cock into me. My head pulled back in pain at the intrusion, his cock reaching a depth inside me I had never felt. Bandit never pulled back, his hips pushing against my ass, the tip of his cock at the entrance of my cervix.

The pain/pleasure of his huge cock stretched my pussy wide, hitting at my womb, the pain was unbearable, the pleasure of being so full, unbelievable, there was no stopping him. I was swooning in the pleasure, his dick pounding me relentlessly. He now knew what he wanted and was not to be denied. I was coming, moaning, screaming, begging him to fuck me harder, HARDER!. He was fucking me as no man could, his 12 inch cock pushing into me, his balls hitting against my clit and lower abs with each push. I was thrusting my ass back onto him, the pain still there, the indescribably great feeling of whole body sex, just a pure, raw, dog fucking, wanting more of that huge cock, not realizing I was about to get more than I bargained for. Bandit moved a little closer into me.

I felt his knot banging against the lips of my cunt, pushing them further apart. I was thinking this was all the further he could go. Again, how naïve of me. I realized he was trying to it get inside. I wanted all of him. He was pushing harder into my full pussy, the tip just inside my cervix, my lips spreading wider, opening wider, wanting that big ball in my cunt. GIVE IT TO ME!!! His knot pushed into my cock ravaged twat, my pussy closed around it, sucking it in, pushing back harder onto it, wanting all he could give me, screaming in both pain and ecstasy. I was his bitch, writhing in orgasm. He was locked with his mate, his big, hard meat inside my womb. FUCKING ME!!! COOOOMING!!! That wonderful, painfully HUGE knot rubbing my G-spot bringing me to orgasm again and again. Bandit fucking into me harder, never pulling away, buried inside me, pounding into my burning hole, his mouth around the back of my neck, biting me, my cunt full of huge dog cock thrusting back onto him, COOOMING!! COOOOOMING!!!FUUCK ME, OHHHH YEEESSSS FUUUUUCK MEEEE HAAAARDER!! Pure, raw, dog sex! I was pushing onto him, my cream running out of me, down my legs, soaking the bedspread. COOOMING!! My whole body shaking with the FUCKING I was receiving. My mind reeled! My orgasms rolled! No love, just hard fucking. FUUUCKING!! This is what I had wanted!

It seemed forever. Fucking me. Fucking my stretched pussy. His cock swelled inside me, his release immanent. I could feel his big, hard pole grow inside me. BIGGER. FUCK ME!!! COME IN ME!!! PULSING INSIDE ME!!! Bandit pushed hard into me. held me against his hips, releasing his hot seed into me, filling me again and again, his sperm unable to escape because of our tie, his HUGE knot, a stopper at the entrance of my clenching cunt, pumping, streaming hard into my womb, a seemingly endless amount of hot dog come filling me, filling me again and again, Bandit’s cock, a fire hose, spraying, COOMING, my lower ab stretching to accommodate the continuous flow. I was shaking in orgasm, pushing back onto that wondrous cock, my cunt milking more come from my mates HUGE dick, my neck in Bandit’s teeth, his spittle running in between my beasts, down my stomach to met the cream in between my shaking legs. Still pushing my ass back into him, never having been SOOO FUUULL, so full!

Minutes passed, Bandit’s streaming come, stopping. I was shaking almost uncontrollably. His instinct took over. He turned around, his ass, unmoving, placed against mine, his bid dog cock still buried inside me. I tried to pull away and couldn’t, Bandit’s knot still locked inside me, my pussy unable to let go of that hard piece of meat, little orgasms running through me. 15 long minutes passed, his knot getting smaller, until finally, with an audible pop, his shrinking knot left my cunt his cock pulled out of me leaving my pussy gaping open, clenching uncontrollably. His hot dog come GUSHED from me, running down my legs to joining the pool of fluid on the spread. I collapsed on the bed, reveling in the complete fucking I had just had. Bandit laying on the floor, licking his receding cock clean of out combined juices. No stress. Eat, walk, poop and now FUCK his wanton bitch.

I had just fucked a dog, willingly. As I lay thinking about what had just transpired, I knew that Alex was going to have fun with us. He had always wanted a bigger cock in his ass and I was going to introduce him to one. I thought, though, Jodi and I were going to have more fun.

Daisy (knotter)

My Slutty Sister

nickmuk on Incest Stories

My name is Nick and my sister is Amy.  Let me tell you about her.  She has dark brown hair,  light brown eyes, around a b-cup bra, and an ass that is the result of many of my fantasies.  She is 13 years old, and I am 16 years old.

I have always lusted over my sister, and really wanted her bad.  She has always been in many of my fantasies.  I would sneak in her room and steal one of her thongs or g-strings to jack off with.  I always considered her to be a slut, because of how she dressed and acted, and I wanted to see for it myself.

Many times at night, I would here her moan and breathe deeply, since her room is right next to mine.  One night, I heard the familiar sound and stood outside her d

Read More
oor.  I opened her door a crack, hoping she wouldn't hear.  There laid my sister in her bed, wearing a t-shirt and thong, and her playing with her tits and pussy.

By now, my cock was fully hard, and I was dying to rip it out.  Just at that moment, she looked directly at me.  I stopped there scared and embarrased, as I had just been caught.  I turned away and walked into my room thinking about what I had down.  Just then, I heard a knock, and it was her.

"Nick, its okay that you were watching," she said. "I mean, it's a little wierd, but I understand."  My sister had just told me that it was okay to watch her.  "In fact, I have seen you do it before too, and it really turned me on." 

I could not believe my little sister was talking like this.  I stood there speechless, and she noticed.  "Well, aren't you going to say something?"  Just then she did the unthinkable, and reached over and kissed me. 

I felt her tongue push against my lips, so I opened them a little bit, to let her tongue slide in.  I made out with my sister for a good 5 minutes, before I started grabbing her tits, and rubbing my hands up her body.

Her hand reached down to my shorts and she started rubbing my cock up and down.  She pulled off my shirt and started kissing my stomach.  She then pulled down my shorts.  I felt her hand move up and down my bare 7 inch cock.  She then started sucking it, moving her lips and tongue up and down.  I was in heaven, and nearly about to cum.  I told her this and she stopped. 

Right away she got on her back, and nearly demanded I eat her pussy.  She pulled off her shorts to reveal her pink, soaking wet thong.  I pulled the string to the side and began licking up and down her slit.  I put two fingers in, and to my suprise, she took it easily.  I sucked on her clit as I fingered her, and she started bucking and humping my face.

She started yelling and screaming, and I had to tell her to calm down or our parents would hear.  She said for me to stop so I did.  She laid me down on my back, and climbed on top.  She positioned her pussy right above my cock and lowered herself.  I got about half way in and she started to go up and down. 

I was nearly about to cum, when she forced herself to go deeper on me, nearly taking the whole cock.  She was going faster and faster, and I couldn't hold it any longer.  She told me just give her one more minute, so I held on the best I could. 

I felt her scream and her pussy grab and swallow my cock.  I told her I had to pull out or I would cum, but she didn't get up, and just pushed herself farther down, as she kissed me on the lips.  Just then I exploded, my hot cum seeping into her pussy.  She let out a sigh of satisfaction and put her head on my chest, my cock still burried deep inside her.

We stayed in that position for a while, me a little worried if I could get her pregenant.  (I didn't)  She pulled out a good half hour later, and went to her bed. 

In the morning we acted as if nothing happened, but I knew this was just the beginning of a very sexual relationship.

Friends lil bro's girlfriend

thenatone on Teen Stories

It was a normal saturday night. I got ready, called up a friend, and I was on my way to his house. My friend Johny, Mike, Dannielle and Alex were there. Alex was Johny's little brother, 16 and Dannielle 15 . Dannielle, Alex's long time girlfriend was the only girl there. When I arrived, Danielle answered the door. She had one hot body, very tight and fit. She was wearing a tight white shirt, that showed some nice cleavage of her c cup breasts, and some pink, skin tight night shorts. They were so tight, they showed every curve, and made it obvious she wasn't wearing any panties. She had such an innocent face, one that seemed like the girl next door type. She was 5'4'', petite, but like I said, a very athletic tight body that was plump in the right spots.

She opened the door, stan
Read More
ding at the end of the door only allowing me little room to enter in between the wall and her body. I grazed my front side along her's, feeling her plump breasts run against my chest, and my crotch across hers. I looked back to see her shut the door and was fixated apon her tight, heart shaped ass, showing her nice camel toe at the bottom as she leaned into the door to shut it. She immediately turned towards me, almost like she was expecting to catch me starring at her ass. And that she did, but I just got a devilish smile, "They're downstairs." She says as she walks into Jareds room to continue watching her movie.

As I go downstairs, I get my usual welcome, and a beer. Alex and Johny are both playing a computer game on two different computers, and Mike in the basement living room watching hbo. I sit around and wait my turn, then jump on for a few rounds. After  awhile, I give up my spot and go back to watching them play. I'm then asked to run upstairs and grab a beer. The fridge with the beer is right infront of Jareds room, so I got a glimpse of Dannielle lieing on the futon watching some movie. I peak in the room and smile, she smiles back. "What cha watching?" She responds with some movie I've never heard of before. "Oh, well that sounds interesting." I lie, giving her a reason to explain the plot to me. I listen and nod my head as I smile, all the while I'm just up there to grab some impumiscuous looks down her shirt at which she is lieing in a really revealing angle. Before I start to head back, she says, " You can come in here and watch it for me, if you want." I nodded, " I'll just go drop off these beers".

I do so, noticing that Alex and Johny are both started a new game and will be quite occupied for a little while. I hurry back upstairs and notice Dannielle scoots to the left end of the footon, bringing her knees to her chest, and patting a spot for me to sit down next to her. So sit down, crack open my beer, and look over to her with a smile. She goes on about how lame they are, playing video games all night and so on...I had already drinked several beers by this point, so my horny mind takes over, and I often find my eyes wondering up and down her beautiful, tight body. Then something fantastic happened...she got quiet, and I looked into the tv to lay witness to a "softcore" love scene. Just at that moment, she murmers that she wants to get a lil more comfortable, and sends her legs over my lap, giving me a great view of her love section! That and the movie just started getting me all worked up, and with the added pressure of her under thighs, my cock just started to heed all the blood headed it's way.

Dannielle started to get a little figidy, moving slightly, and making my hard-on grow at an alarming rate. I just kind of played it cool, but I knew she noticed by her pressing down, and shifting her ass closer and closer to my side...all the while her legs getting further apart centemeter by centimeter. By the time I had grown to almost full mast, my cock was very noticable, and pressing sooo hard into her legs. I looked at her, getting ready to apologize. She smiles, and whispers, "Well, I better do something about that before Jared comes in here wondering why you have a huge hard on."

I chuckled quietly, "And what did you have in mind?" I asked.

She maneuvers herself onto her side, pulling down my pants, letting my huge cock spring to it's full potential. Her eyes widen, "Oh my god, I never knew...you...you were so big!" A smile comes across her face, knowing she's in for a little more work than she bargained for. Her sexy full lips wrap around my cock head and she devours it into her warm, suculent mouth. I gasp at the contact of her warm, wet tongue start to glide down my cock, deeper into her mouth, it decends into her tight little throat. My head flies back at the deep throat, and she returns to my tip, swirling her tongue around my sensetive spot, then glides smoothing back down balls deep. With every second passing, her pace increases until she is at full speed, deep throating my cock like it's a piston at full speed inside the engine of a viper. The sucking, swallowing, squishy sounds of her mouth fill the room as her expert deep throating abilities are shown at full glory apon my very lap. I keep thinking to myself, God how lucky Alex is!

I've always wanted to fuck her, so I conjour up a way to get her nice and horny, to the point where she is pratically begging me to stick my cock in her hole. But at this pace, with her expert deep throating, I was sure to bust any time now. She maneuvered into a better position and started bobbing her head up and down the length of my cock faster than before. I felt the ergancey of an erruption coming close, but I must enjoy this as long as possible! Her new position gave me access to start rubbing her pussy through her shorts. But it was too late, I couldn't take it anymore...I whispered to her, "I'm cumming." She instinctivly started bobbing up and down in short spirts on the tips of my cock, working the base of my cock with her soft hand, pumping my huge, from a week of abstenence, load into her mouth. "UUUUGGHHHH!" I came hard, depositing huge white, sticky loads into her mouth. One after another, filling her cheeks full. She somehow managed to hold it all in her mouth, showing me the abundance of cum that was starting to run down her chin. She then quickly shut her mouth and took a deep swallow. Wiping the remaining cum from her chin and sucking it down off her finger.

I was still rock hard as she assumed cleaning my cock with her tongue. Her phone rang...it was Alex. "Get me some beer women!" He says over the phone, loud enough for me to hear. She shrugs and get's up going to the fridge. She bends over gracefully, showing me a nice view while grabbing her man some beer. She turns and smiles, "I'll be back. Don't you go anywhere." That was enough to keep me hard, the thought of fucking her tight little twat was sending me into a crazy state of lust. My best friends little brothers girl, the one who's been teasing me for 2 years. She had always had a crush on me, and I always wanted to fuck the shit out of her. She was quite a little slut. We had always told Alex that she was quite a tease, and we were sure she had cheated on him several times with multipul guys, but he never listened.

As she came back upstairs, I was still on the futon, my cock standing at full attention. She shut the door quietly behind her and slipped down her shorts in a sexy manor. Before I could blink she was climbing a top of me, spreading her legs and getting into position for what was next to come. I felt the tip of my cock meet her warm, juicey opening. She slipped down, gasping for air as she hits rock bottom. I grab ahold of her hips, and help her move up and down until we have worked our way up to a quickend pace. I reposition my hands, grabbing tightly to her perfect little ass, spreading her cheeks and helping the little vixen fuck me in a see saw motion. She lifts her shirt, revealing her firm tits to my mouth. I smother them one at a time, sucking hard on her nipples that seem to get harder and bigger with every second.

Leaning forward, she allows me to reposition my ass below her for the plowing to begin. I take a deep breath and start to jack hammer upwards into her tiny pink pussy. The room is now filled with the slapping of my mid section against her ass combined with our panting breaths of lust. She's quite the dirty talker, filling my ears with her whispers..."Ohhh, fuck me, fuck my little pussy...fuck me harder." I truely experience her great ability to fuck hard as she jolts her ass down into every hard thrust I send into her. If I hadn't of cum already, this would be the time! So I decide, time to chance positions. I lift her off my cock, and stand up. She leans over the top of the futon and sticks out her ass. At this moment I'm faced with a dilemma. Her pretty pink, puckered anus or her juicey tight little pussy. I look over on the counter, and she see's I'm looking at the lube. "You wanna fuck my ass don't you." I've heard Alex bragging about how much Dannielle loves to be anal fucked, and so I grab it, lube up, and start to push into her little asshole.

I see her biting her lips as I push into her ass, deeper and deeper until I fill her up completely. I move out to the tip, then back in. I work out most the friction and start to go beserk. I hold tightly onto her hips as I drive my cock deep in and out of her ass. My rampage continues, working my hips to slam her ass harder and harder, sending her body jolting forward, only for her to return with her own effort. Her cute innocent face looks back into me, our eyes connect, and the lust boils over as she whispers, "Fuck my ass, oooh fuck it hard." I just started to go crazy, fucking with such intensity that has never emerged from within before. I swear we were being a little too loud at this point, but I was lost in lust, and all senses other than my organ being thrusted back and forth, deep within her bowels was on my mind. It seemed like eternity, but a position change was in my mind, and she rolled over, letting her legs over my shoulders. My cock seemed to find her pussy this time, and I was quick to start jabbing it into her cunt with the same intensity as before. I pressed my body hard against hers, her ankes now behind her head and my cock pounding furociously into her pussy.

Her panting became little squeaks, trying to supress the noise, but too much was being let out to control. It sounded so sexy, so innocent, I just pounded my meat harder and faster. My body was much larger than hers, and for some reason my mind traveled behind me, thinking of what it'd look like if someone were to walk in on us at this very moment...all you'd see is me jackhammering towards the futon with two little legs behind my shoulders, and her little hands holding tightly ontom my shoulders.

I don't know what I was thinking at the moment, but I wasn't thinking about cumming in this girls pussy, which is exactly what started to become a reality. She came with such intensity, she had one sharp intake of air, and looked into my eyes with the "i'm cumming soooo hard" look. It made my cock flow so much faster and harder, I soon joined her, sending load after load of my seed deep into her pussy. The earthquake orgasm hit us both hard, we were sweating perfusely. I shoved up into her cunt, sending another shot of cum into her, I moved back, and again slammed hard, pushing her entire body upwards as I unloaded yet another gooey load of my jizz inside of her. I then went into a spasm type fucking motion, letting her pussy milk the rest of my cum into her. The phone rang, it was Alex again...She answered it with my cock still deep inside of her. "Yes honey?" She says sweatly while looking into my eyes, smiling with a lustful avengence. "More beer, bring more beer!" He shouts. Just as she was about to answer, I jolted another couple of thrusts into her pussy, stopping her from responding. She looks at me, almost amazed I would do something like that...then replies, "Alright already...I'm cummin!"

Well, this was a true story, one that I changed around the names for ofcourse...and basically, we fuck every chance we get now. Alot of the times, it's a very close call...like that night, he was just in the basement...The fact that he's around make's our crazy affair seem just that much more exciting...I know it's wrong, but I can't help it...she's such a sexy little slut! I'd have many more stories of our encounters after this night, one that was the day after infact. Let me know if you wanna hear more!

Me and my bro edited for kawaiiprincess

The_Purvv on Incest Stories

Kawaiiprincess recently posted a story titled 'Me and my bro having fun in the bath tub' in which the author explained it was his or her first story, and asked the readers opinion. As rough around the edges as it was with too little details needed to allow the reader time to get into it, I thought the for a first time effort, it showed a possibility that the author might be one of the rare few th

Sex Slave Sister

wetpussybondageslut on Incest Stories

Monica slept soundly, dreaming of her pussy being licked and sucked and eaten out.  It felt so good she did not want to wake up.  Her body trembled and quivered at the sensation.  Her eyes fluttered slightly, opening a little, and she could swear it was happening for real.  She fell back to sleep without realizing that it actually was.

At sixteen, Monica was developing quite nicely, her breasts a full D-cup. They heaved up and down as she orgasmed into her brother's mouth.  Since she slept naked, it was a simple matter of sneaking into her room and pulling her sheets off as he had been doing for several nights.  It had only been this night he had gotten brave enough to try and lick her pussy.  But once he had started, he found it so pleasurable t

Read More
o her that he didn't want to stop.  She had gushed juices into his mouth, having repeated orgasms.  She was breathing so hard and moaning that he had been surprised she had not woke up.  If she did, he feared she would tell their parents and get him into trouble.  Fortunately, they had gone out of town for the weekend, leaving him in charge.  Still, he did not want to risk her waking up and running out and telling anyone.

Taking some of her socks, he used them to tie her wrists and ankles to the bedposts, being careful not to wake her  up.  He supposed it would have been safer if he just left, but he wanted to go further and tame her so she would do whatever he wanted.  At 17, he had only had a few girlfriends and none of them had allowed him to have sex with them.  Damon wanted to make Monica his first.  He was pretty sure she was a virgin, also. He looked at her naked body, nicely shaven and firm, and wanted to fuck her badly.  He wanted to put a gag in her mouth, but she was sure to wake up.  He bent down and began licking her pussy again.

"Oh, that feels so good," she said out loud, but still asleep and thinking it to be a dream.

Damon stripped off his clothes, tossing them in the corner with a pile of her stuffed animals, and crawled up on the bed with her.  He touched her breast, pinching and pulling the nipple in his hand.   "Mmmmmm," she said.

But then she must have realized what was happening.  Her eyes opened wide at the sight of her own brother naked on her bed.  She could see the juices still dripping from his mouth.  She pulled and struggled against the cloth tying her wrists.  "Oh my god, Damon," she shouted, "I'm your sister!"

 He reached down and slid his fingers up into her wet pussy. She moaned and leaned back, arching her back.  "Stop," she said, whimpering and wanting more.  She did not protest much, though, as he massaged her mound and rubbed her.  Her body trembled.

Damon's cock grew to a full seven inches as he watched her writhing in pleasure.  "You know you like it," he said, so quit resisting."

Monica bit her lip to keep from screaming out as he sank his cock into her, ripping through her hymen and spurting blood around the sides of his cock.  "I do like it," she admitted, "but you know it is wrong-"  She barely got the words out as her body convulsed in a heavy tremor and her pussy tightened around him, milking his cock for his sperm.

He came prematurely but remained hard, so he thrust into her to keep it hard, stroking it in deeper as she spread her legs wider.  "You don't really want me to stop?" he asked.

"NO!" she screamed, her body pumping furiously to work him in deeper.  "Just do what you want to do to me."

He started pumping in faster and deeper, with her permission to do so freeing him of his inhibitions.  Monica felt like he was ripping her in half,but it felt so good at the same time.

"Fuck me harder, Damon," she begged.  "Fuck me like your woman, Damon."

Damon took that to be all he needed, so he fucked her until she bled more and screamed, finally cumming deep into her.

"Mmmmmmm," she moaned, her body being sent into spasms with multiple convulsions and orgasms.  "You can fuck me like that anytime," she said.

"Oh, I intend to," he said.  To prove it, he left her tied up and fucked her at least four more times that day, and dozens more times before the weekend was over.

A teen girl slut for the black boys.

Decked20Solo on Ethnic Stories

My name is Brunie, I'm 17 and I live in Portugal. I am 5'6 ft tall, white skin, a very nice body, my boobs are medium size but very tasty and my ass is round and very nice.
I have a boyfriend named Richard, he is also white and he is 21 years old. He was the first man I have been with and he is the one who took my virginity. I go to school, singel daughter and I live with my parents near Lisbon.

Well everything started when one day I logged in my MSN and there was someone who wanted to add me. From the mail I got to know that that someones name was Ivan, I didnt know anyone with that name but I was curious and I decided to accept to see who he was. I accepted and he was online on the MSN and he talked to me. From his photo I saw he was a black boy, on the photo he was on th
Read More
e beach with his shirt off and I saw he had a nice and ripped body, and his hair was like a cornrow not too long.
I am not racist, not even close, actually I always had some curiosity about black guys, because everyone said they were different from the white guys in things related to sex, but I never tried to know more..it was just curiosity. So we talked for a while and he told me he was 18 and lived near Lisbon on some ghetto. He was very naughty, he said he had seen my hi5 and asked my email to a friend of mine that he also knew because he thought I was very pretty and hot. He wanted to know if I had a boyfriend and I said I did and then he asked if he was white or black. When I said he was white he laughed and said that it was a waste that a girl like me was dating a white guy instead of a black one. I understood where he wanted to get but I tried to avoid that subject..but he kept insisting on it. He wanted to know if I had ever been with a black guy and when I said I didnt he asked me if I was racist, I said i wasnt and he asked if I would lke to be with a black guy then. I simply said that I had a boyfriend and I didnt want to be with anyone else than him. He laughed and said that I should be with a real man and not with some white guy. I said my boyfriend was a real man and then he asked if he was good in sex, I just answered yes but he got aware of my hesitation and laughed. He then asked something that got me surprised and excited at the same time...he asked me the size of my boyfriends dick. I said he was being stupid and I wouldnt tell him that, and he laughed and started teasing me saying that if I didnt want to say it was because he was right and my boyfriend couldnt satisfy me. He insited alot and me already annoyed finally answered him, my boyfriends dick was 5.1 inches. I knew it wasnt a big dick but I never really cared about it, sex wasnt that important to me but sometimes he managed to satisfy me...so I thought..

When I told him the size of my boyfriends dick he laughed and joked alot, and asking if that was what I called a
real man. I was getting upset and asked him what was a real man then, and he answered he was a real man. I decided to play along and asked him the size of his dick. He proudly answered 8.5inches. I laughed and didnt believe him, 8.5inches was alot but he kept saying it was true and asked if I wanted him to prove me. I asked how was he going to do that and he said he would turn the webcam on and show me. I prontly said no and that he was a perv but, curiosity kept growing inside of me and it was getting me excited. He kept insisting and teasing and I finally accepted.

When he turned the webcam on, he was sitting on the bed with the computer between his legs. He was only in boxers and he must had put on one of those body olis because his body was shinning with the light. Those defined abs, those not too big but well defined muscles, and his boxers..actually the bulge inside his boxers...he started massaging that bulge to tease me and asked me if I was ready to see the big one. I said yes and he pulled the boxers down and when he did it, a big fat cock jumped out..very dark and with a huge head. As soon as I saw it, my pussy got immediatly wet...he started jerking that big piece of black meat up and down and my mouth was wide opened as I was seeing that cock, up and down...and I started playing with myself. I was dripping wet, just from watching that cock I was so fucking horny. "So..is it big or what?" he asked and I said it was. He teased me more and more and asked me if I wanted to see it personally. Of course I wanted to...I was crazy about that freaking cock..I just wanted to feel it...but I had a boyfriend and before I did something I would regret I closed the MSN.

That night I had torubles falling asleep, my pussy was always wet and I couldnt stop thinking about Ivans big black cock. In the next day I logged in my MSN hoping he would be there, and he was. "Here is my little white slut, you came looking for the big fat cock wasnt it?" he said as soon as I logged in. "Dont talk to me like that!" I angrily said because he called me slut but at the same time, excited. He kept teasing me and calling me slut and bitch, I was getting very excited and he asked if I wanted him to turn the webcam on again. Firstly I said no, but when he said his cock was already hard and waiting for me I accepted. There he wasa gain. with the computer between his legs, his balls were huge and falling down, and that cock..that fat veiny black cock pointing in the air. When I saw it I couldnt avoid and I furiously stuffed my fingers in my soaking wet pussy. "You cant resist this black dong isnt it my little bitch?", "Yes I can" I lied. "Oh can you? So if you wanna see it ever again, go meet me tommorow in the train station parking lot at 1pm" he said and immediatly logged off. I got mad, he gone away and left me there super excited and alone. I fucked my pussy with my fingers a little more untill I cummed. Obviously I wasnt meeting him tommorow...I had a boyfriend and besides that I also had classes by that time tommorow. I was never going to meet some black boy I barely knew. I had troubles to sleep again that night, I couldnt stop thinking about that cock..I couldnt stop masturbating...

In the following day, I went to classes in the morning as normal, but I was thinkin about Ivan all the time. Already desperate I called my boyfriend who was also having classes, we were in the same school, and told him to come with me to the back of the school because I was very horny. He almost exploed in happiness, I had never asked him something like that. We went to the back of the school, we started kissing and touching each other, he put his hand in my panties and touch my pussy...but I wasnt getting excited..I then decided to get on my knees and give him a blowjob. When I pulled his dick out he seemed tiny compared to Ivan. It was much smaller, much thiner...much less exciting. I even sucked him for some minutes, but I couldnt hold it anymore. I stood up, told him I had to go, and I ran outside the school. I caught the bus heading the train station..it was almost 1pm. When I got there, I ran to the parking lot and searched desperatly for some sign of him...There wanst anynone there, just some cars. I felt desperate, did he give up from comming? Then a car give me some light signs, it was and old grey car in the furthest side of the park. I walked there..was it him? When I got closer I could see inside the car very well yet beause there was a lot of smoke inside, but he oppened the passenger door. I walked slowly to there, peeked inside and saw his hand laying on the passenger seat. A big black hand with golden rings on his fingers, he tapped twice on the seat to invite me to seat. I found what where all that smoke was comming from, he was smoking a joint. I sat down shaking in fear, but at the same time my little pussy was dripping all the way down my legs. I sat, closed the door and looked at him. It was really him, the cornrow hair, those full lips, those mean eyes...
"So you did came hein bitch? You couldnt resist the nigga han?" I kept quite.
"Ahaha dont be scared girl...wanna feel the cock now?" Once again I couldnt answer him and kept looking down. He grabbed my hand and put it on his cock that was yet inside of his trousers.
"Feel it bitch, thats why you are here right?" I could feel the heat from that cock from inside his trousers...I could hold it and started rubbing it. He also started feeling my body, he run his hand on my back, he played with my tits, whose nipples were hard as a rock. Meanwhile I was already rubbing that cock with both hands. He took my hands of his pants and pushed me away.
"Want that dick bitch? If you do you gotta ask for it"
"I want it..." I said without taking my eyes of that bulge.
"Ask harder!" He screamed to my face.
"I want that cock!" I almost screamed burning in desire.
"Harder you fucking slut!!!" He scream even more louder.
"I WANT THAT HUGE BLACK COCK!" I screamed in despair and attacked his trousers, unbottened them furiously, pulled them down, the boxers too and that monster jumped out right in front of my face. I immediatly hold it with both hands and jerked it off up and down. It was freaking huge! I could feel that power running on his veins of that black monument. Burning in desire I opened my mouth and swallowed that black beast.
"Thats it bitch! Suck that cock nicely! You nasty little white slut!" He said forcing my head down on his cock. 
"Lets go to my home so I can rip you up with that cock?
"Hum hum" I agreed with my mouth full.
"I didnt understand you bitch!" He screamed and pulled my head up by the hair.
"YES!" I screamed and went back on swallowing that delicious black meat.
He drove back home always speeding up while I sucked on his cock, I dont know if the people on the street could see me but I really didnt care. When we got to his hood he asid he was cumming and filled my throat with his cum, I swallowed almost everything but a bit went to his leg but I licked it right away.
He lived on a ghetto and most people were black so they stared at me wondering who that white girl was. We went up the stairs to his home.

He told me to go to his bedroom and I did, after a while he came too, layed on the bed and started to smoke another joint while I was looking and waiting for him to say something.
"What the fuck are you waiting for bitch? Suck it!"He didnt need to say twice, I took his pants offand went back on sucking that wonderfull black cock. He pushed my head down, rubbed me tits and ass, I felt like a real slut..but I didnt mind it. He started undressing me and touching me all over. Then got on his knees on the bed and started to face fuck me very hard. He was stuffin that big cock all the way down my throat and I was chocking and spitting when he gave me the chance to breathe. Then got me on my back and tit fucked me while I sucked the big black head. Then he moved down and licked my pussy untill I cummed and when I did, he positioned that now scaring huge cock in the entrance of my tight pink pussy.
He started forcing his way inside my tight little hole, when the head got in i felt my pussy ripping apart, I felt that head stretching my dripping wet little pussy. He was getting more and more of his cock inside and I could only scream in pain and pleasure. I was being all stretched out by that 8.5inches black monster cock and I was loving it. 

When I was getting used to all that size he started fcking me harder and faster, he was calling me bitch and slut and was chockin my neck and I loved it. I cummed 3 times just in that position, then he fucked me doggy while he spanked my ass. He said he wanted to fuck my ass my I said no because I never got it in the ass, so he just put one finger in my ass while he kept slammming my soaking pussy.Then he layed back and I rode that black pole untill I couldnt anymore.
"Get on your fours again bitch" He said while it got all the way off his cock. I got on my 4s and thought he wanted some more pussy but instead he spit on my ass and got only the head of his cock on my pussy to get it wet.
"I said I didnt want it in the ass!"
"But who asked you anything bitch?" And started forcing his way inside my virgin little ass. In the beggining it hurt like hell! It felt like my ass was burning. But when I got used to get my ass all stretched out and abused by
those fat 8.5inches of black meat it started to feel wonderfull. He groaned while he buried himself in my ass and I screamed to in delight. When I started to feel his cock to pulsate and he spanking me harder I understood he was about to cum.
"Get on your knees bitch!" He screamed and unburied all that cock from my abused ass and I got on my knees. He made me suck his cock that tasted a bit bad and after some seconds he exploded on my mouth and on my face. My face was full of cum and he made me suck his cock clean.
"Well done slut, you did a good job. Thats it for today but when I call you again, you will come understood? You belong to me know bitch." I didnt answer him, I was catching my breath, I felt like a real slut, I was all sore and my ass was burning. He gave me a towel to clean myself up and threw my clothes at me. I got dressed and he sent me away. I walked back to the train station.My pussy was all sore, my ass was burning and it felt like I really needed to go to the bathroom, and I had the taste of cum on my mouth, but I was satisfied.

My Sexy Little Girls

Drakkar on Incest Stories

                    Daddy's Naughty Daughters
                         by Kain Starbow


                            Chapter 1


Crissy Adams squirmed in bed and sighed. She opened her eyes and
squinted against the morning sun shining in through the curtains of her
bedroom window.

"Oooooh," she murmured softly, gliding her hands under the sheet. A hot
shiver swept over her hot virgin body as her hands settled on her small
plump tits.

Her nipples hardened and a tremor in her pussy made her hips jerk.
Eage

Read More
r and hot, she kicked off the sheet and pulled her pink baby-doll
nightie from her lithe virgin body.

Shaking, she caressed her bare tits, her breathing shallow, raspy. Her
smooth silky flesh felt as if it were on fire.

"Oh, damn," she muttered, writhing on her back. Her glassy blue eyes
stared down at her tits and massaging fingers. It was almost as if she
were watching someone else fondle her creamy tit mounds. She squeezed
them and moaned, her thighs clapping tightly together, the squishy
cream of her pussy soaking the crotch of her panties.

With one hand still caressing and massaging her plump tits, Crissy
moved her other hand to her pink bikini bottoms. Teasing herself, she
slipped her hand into her panties and played with the soft silky hair
of her blonde-thatched virgin pussy. Her breath caught in her throat
and she spread her legs.

"Mmmm," she purred, dipping one finger through the wet slippery gash of
her cunt. "Oooooh!" Her hips jerked up as the tip of her finger glided
over her blood-filled sensitive clit. "Unnnn!"

Trembling, she stroked her pussy, the tip of her tongue flicking over
her Parted lips to keep them moist as she gasped air into her lungs.
Warm pussy-cream drenched her urgent fingers and the sweet scent of her
turned-on pussy drifted up to make her head spin.

Panting, she tore off her panties, exposing her bare pussy. She closed
her eyes, pretending her father was at the foot of the bed watching
her. "Ooooh, Daddy. Look at me." It was a hoarse whisper of
desperation.

She spread her legs wide, parted the satiny folds of her cunt and
rolled her hips. The red glistening slit of her virgin fuckhole was
completely displayed. "I'm so wet, Daddy," she whispered. She pinched
her clit and shuddered as tiny spasms rippled through her writhing
body.

Whimpering, Crissy rolled over onto her belly. She pressed her tits
against the mattress, her nipples pleasurably sore as she rubbed them
against the sheet. "Un ... un ... un."

Keeping her legs spread, Crissy reached around, and she parted the
cheeks of her firm heart-shaped ass. "Look, Daddy," she moaned, her
words muffled against a pillow. She exposed her wrinkled pinkish-brown
asshole and squirmed.

"I'm so hot!" she gasped, writhing on her belly. She brought her hands
under her body, raking her nails over her clit. Spasms caromed through
her virgin fuckhole and warm sticky pussy-cream oozed out over her
frantic fingers.

Dizzy with lust, Crissy rolled out of bed, staggering on wobbly legs to
the closet door. From dilated blue eyes, she stared hotly at her slim
naked body. She pouted, wishing her tits were bigger, her hips more
round, and the silky blonde hair around her pussy were thicker. "Damn,"
she moaned, rubbing her body. She pushed her tits together, making them
appear larger.

"Unnnn." The heat in her pussy spread, exciting her in its sizzling
warmth.

Quivering and panting, she staggered back to the bed, not wanting to
look at her slim body, knowing her father wouldn't be interested in
her. He would want a woman, she knew, and she was only a little girl.

Sprawled out on her back, she played with her wet seeping pussy. Her
body quaked as her fingers groped and massaged her hard pulsing clit.
"Oh ... oh ... oh," she panted, her innocent face flushed with
excitement.

With her small plump tits jiggling, Crissy worked the juices of her
virgin pussy into a frothy lather. Cream soaked her fingers and oozed
down her cunt crack, staining the sheets. She gulped in air, her hips
jerking. "Oooh, I'm so hot."

Her writhing body began to twitch sporadically. The insides of her cunt
pulsed and oozed creamy juices into the empty channel of her virgin
fuckhole.

With her legs slapping frantically up and down, Crissy raced wildly
toward her climax. She clawed her clit with one hand, scratched the
fingers of her other hand through her red sensitive pussy. Her nipples
swelled, jiggling on the peaks of her creamy tits. She humped up,
trembled, her orgasm a breath away.

"Oh, shit!" she gasped, her blue eyes widening. "Ooooh, I'm gonna ...
cum!"

Gulping back her pounding heart, Crissy's fingers devastated her clit
and the opening of her virgin pussy. "I'm cumming," she moaned, trying
to keep her voice down. The last thing she wanted to do was wake her
sister in the other room. "Ooooh ... I'm ... cumming."

Hot spasmodic orgasms swept over Crissy's writhing twisting body. The
muscles inside her wet overheated cunt pulsed, gripping an imaginary
cock. "I'm cumming ... unnnn."

She bucked up from the bed, hot pussycream gushing from her climaxing
cunt. The frothy white cum flowed over her fingers, down her pussy
crack, and widened the dark stain on the sheet. "Ooooh, Daddy. I want
you!"

She thrashed on her back, her head snapping from side to side, her
blonde hair slashing across her face. She strained her neck and arched
her back as another orgasm tore through her pussy like a hot poker.
Tits flopping, hips jerking, she twisted and writhed on the bed, her
little body in the throes of another even more intense orgasm.

Clawing her clit and pussy, she jerked up and flipped over onto her
belly. "Unnnnn," she moaned, her cries lost in the pillow. She slammed
her hips forward, mangling her clit between her fingers. The sweet
tender meat of her asscheeks jiggled, the flesh stained with pussy-cum.

"Oh ... oh ... ahhhh!" She ground her climaxing body over the mattress,
crushing her tits beneath her. Legs flopping, clit mashed against her
fingers, she jerked up, crashed down, her screams lost in the pillow.

Gasping and drooling, Crissy humped her fingers, her ass jerking and
twisting wildly. Hot orgasms washed over her trembling body and she
rocked frantically, the bed squeaking beneath her.

"Ahhhh!" Her young body stiffened, quivered, then relaxed as she seemed
to melt into the bed. Panting, she lay there, tingling sensations
seeping over her as the intensity of her orgasms left her weak, yet
unsatisfied.

                             Chapter 2


Tammy, Crissy's older sister, stood in the doorway separating their two
rooms. She was wearing only a pair of panties. Her tits, larger and
fuller than Crissy's, were tingling. She swallowed the lump in her
throat and giggled.

Crissy lifted her head, her face filling with shock as she stared at
her sister. Quickly, she rolled over, a sheepish grin on her face. "How
long have you been standing there?"

"Long enough to watch you cream all over the fuckin' bed," she said,
coming into Crissy's room. "Damn ... I heard the bed squeaking from my
room."

"You gonna tell Daddy?" Crissy asked, a tinge of fear and excitement
skipping through her young body.

"Why should I tell Daddy?" Tammy said. She plopped on the bed, her
large tits bouncing erotically.

Crissy leered jealously at her sister's plump creamy tits. She began to
tingle all over. She also became aware of her own naked body and her
sister's leering looks.

"Is your pussy all wet?" Tammy asked, her voice husky, her bright green
eyes glassy and dilated.

"My pussy's always wet," Crissy giggled. She spread her legs. "See for
yourself."

Tammy gasped as she leered hungrily at her sister's virgin pussy.

"How 'bout you?" Crissy asked boldly. "Is your pussy always wet?"

Tammy sighed and peeled off her panties. "I wake up the same way every
morning ... hot and wet."

Crissy sat up, her small firm tits jiggling. She licked her lips,
enjoying the sight of her sister's curly red cunt hair. "You still a
virgin?"

Tammy pouted. "I think I'll always be a virgin," she said. "I know you
are."

Crissy stroked her fingers through her own wet steamy cunt slit,
coating her fingers with pussy-cream. "All I think about is getting
fucked," she admitted.

"Maybe if we make it together, we can have some fun."

Crissy sighed as a trickling spasm rippled through her pussy. "I'll
pretend I'm a boy."

Tammy crawled up beside her sister and wrapped her arms around her.
"God, this is going to be fun."

Crissy melted into her sister's arms. "You ever do this before?" she
whispered.

"Never," Tammy said. She rubbed her body against Crissy's. "I'm
creaming."

"Me, too!" Crissy gasped. She pressed her lips to her sister's mouth,
her tongue flicking out into Tammy's open mouth.

Tammy gulped, sucking on her sister's tongue. She squirmed, forcing her
thigh between Crissy's legs. Warm pussy-cream coated her skin.

"Unnnn," Crissy purred. She jerked her hips, gliding her cunt along her
sister's smooth silky thigh. Her mouth came away from Tammy's lips.
"Ooooh, Tammy. This is great."

"It's gonna get better, too!" Tammy gasped. "Christ, you're really
creaming my leg."

"Unnn, I know," Crissy moaned, the inside of her pussy bubbling with
warm sticky cunt cream. She shoved her thigh between Tammy's legs,
pressed it up against her cunt. "Ooooh, you're creaming, too."

They clung to each other, their tits, sensitive and ripe, mashed
against each other's. Their hips jerked and their cunts pulsed, oozing
hot buttery cream. Their mouths locked and their tongues explored, the
spit in their mouths drenching their faces.

Crissy pulled away from her sister. Panting, her blue eyes glowing, she
leered at Tammy's lush body sprawled out on the bed. "I'm tired of
kissing. I wanna do more."

Tammy caught her breath. "If you had a cock, you could break my
cherry."

Crissy brought her mouth to her sister's plump ripe tits. She flashed
her tongue over one swollen nipple. "I don't have a prick, so my mouth
will have to do."

"Ahhhh!" Tammy gasped. She squirmed, waiting for Crissy to devour her
tits. "Suck 'em, Crissy. Suck 'em and bite them like a boy would do."

"I will," Crissy whispered. "I'm gonna suck every part of your body,
then you can do the same to me."

"Yes," Tammy moaned. She spread her legs and reached for Crissy's small
cherry-capped tits. She squeezed, making her younger sister moan. "Make
me crazy."

Crissy's head was spinning. She got comfortable on the bed, fondled her
older sister's tits, and her blue eyes fixed hungrily on the girl's
swollen pink nipples. In the next instant, she brought her mouth to one
jiggling tit and sucked.

"Ahhhh!" Tammy panted. "Bite! Bite!"

Crissy lost her mind. Gobbling on her sister's tits had her crazy. She
feasted on Tammy's cherry-red nipples, making the tips hard. She
slobbered her spit over the girl's soft creamy skin, her tongue working
over every warm inch of her sister's huge tits.

Tammy writhed on her back. Her red-fringed pussy was creaming, soaking
her ass-crack and thighs as she squeezed her legs together. "Ooooh,
bite me, Crissy. Bite my fuckin' tits."

Crissy, her face smeared with drool, used her teeth. She nipped at her
sister's nipples, biting and sucking her white silky skin, turning it
red. In seconds she had Tammy wailing in ecstasy.

"Ooooh, Crissy! Crissy!" Tammy forgot about mauling Crissy's tits. She
dropped her hands to claw the sheet. The inside of her pussy pulsed
each time Crissy took a deep suck on her tits. "I'm creaming ...
unnnn!"

Crissy lifted her head and saw what she had done to her sister's tits.
Panting noisily, she climbed over Tammy's body, straddling one of
Tammy's long outstretched legs. She ground her cunt against Tammy's
knee and whimpered. "I'm so hot, Tammy!"

"Me, too," Tammy moaned, leering hotly at her sister.

Crissy's hips were jerking. Her small tits jiggled, her nipples feeling
as if they were going to burst. "I'm creaming ... Christ, Tammy. I'm
creaming your fuckin' knee."

"I feel it!" Tammy gasped. She jerked up her knee, smashing it against
Crissy's cunt, and watched her younger sister's face twist into a mask
of lust.

"Aghhh!" Crissy wailed, almost toppling off her sister's knee. "Jesus,
Tammy. I'm so fuckin' hot!"

"My pussy, Crissy. Eat my pussy." Tammy was shaking, the inside of her
virgin cunt on fire. "Eat my pussy. Make me cum!"

Drunk with desire, Crissy stared down between Tammy's parted legs,
gazing greedily at the red gash of her cunt. "Then you eat me ...
right?" The words came from her mouth in gasping pants.

"Yes ... yes," Tammy moaned. "Oh, God, get the hell off my leg and eat
my pussy. "

Douglas Adams, having heard noises coming from his daughter's bedroom,
had climbed the stairs. Curious, he peeked into Crissy's bedroom. A hot
jolt of passion churned his gut. He gulped and leered at his two naked
daughters. Instantly, he had a hard-on, a hard-on that ached painfully.
He stared, his gaze traveling over Crissy's lithe body as she climbed
off Tammy's knee.

"Shit," Crissy moaned. "I'm shaking all over."

"Eat me," Tammy begged. "Christ. Make me cum." She rubbed her own
swollen tits.

Crissy enjoyed the power she held over her older sister. "I'll eat your
pussy," she said.

She dragged a finger up through Tammy's wet seeping cunt. "When I'm
ready."

Hot spasms caromed through Tammy's twisting body. "You little bitch,"
she moaned. "Eat my cunt and stop teasing."

Crissy had no intention of stopping her erotic game. She pinched
Tammy's clit, making her sister writhe and scream. "You better stop
howling, or Daddy will hear you."

"You bitch!" Tammy gasped.

"I'm a bitch," Crissy tormented. "I'm the bitch who's gonna suck your
cunt and make you cream. You better be nice to me."

"I will," Tammy promised. "I'll do anything you want."

Crissy massaged her sister's cunt, pinching the girl's hard throbbing
clit and running her finger up and down her sopping cunt slit. "Will
you eat my asshole out with your tongue and suck it?"

"Yes," Tammy moaned. "Anything! Anything!"

Crissy twisted Tammy's clit with her fingers, then dropped onto her
belly. She licked the juice-stained flesh of Tammy's inner thighs, her
head spinning, her own cunt dripping. She sucked and chewed on Tammy's
thighs, her mouth getting closer and closer to her sister's overheated
cunt.

Tammy writhed on her back, her tits flopping, her nails clawing the
sheet. She humped up, whimpering under her sister's mouth. "My pussy,"
she pleaded. "Eat me!"

For a second, Crissy stared at her sister's pussy. It was red, the
velvety folds swollen, glistening with a filmy cream that oozed from
the inside of her cunt. She swallowed hard, her blue eyes glazed with
lust.

"Eat me," Tammy howled. She humped up, her ass coming off the bed. She
twisted her hips, moaning, anxious for her sister's tongue to put out
the raging fire in her steamy pussy. "Eat me!"

Crissy scooted her hands under Tammy's jiggling ass, digging her nails
into the soft flesh. She fused her mouth to Tammy's pussy and sucked.

"Aghhhh!" Tammy wailed, her body trembling wildly. "Ooooh, Crissy!
Crissy!"

Warm pussy-cream flowed over Crissy's face. She sucked, drawing sticky
cream into her mouth. The taste of her sister's pussy made her dizzy
and her cunt contracted sporadically, pulsing, gripping an imaginary
cock.

"Suck," Tammy moaned. "Ooooh, suck me, Crissy!" She thrashed on the
bed, her pussy flowing, her cunt feeling as if it was being sucked from
her body. "Oooh, Crissy!"

                               * * * * *

Douglas watched, not believing what his eyes were witnessing. His
children, both babies in his eyes, were acting and carrying on like two
oversexed whores. It blew his mind. He rubbed his cock through his
pants and pushed the door open another few inches to get a better view.

Crissy wormed her tongue between the velvety folds of her sister's hot
pussy. She lapped hungrily at the flowing juices, swallowing them as
her tongue penetrated the entrance to Tammy's virgin fuckhole. She
raked her sister's ass, making her howl and twist on the bed.

Tammy arched her back, jerked her hips and smashed her cunt into
Crissy's face. "My clit, Crissy! Chew my fuckin' clit!"

Crissy plastered her mouth tightly to her sister's pussy, chewed
sadistically on the loose folds and sucked warm cream into her mouth.
Her fingers scratched the sensitive flesh of her sister's ass as she
sought the crack and the tiny ring of her asshole.

Tammy squirmed, bucking her hips. Her mouth opened as Crissy's fingers
clawed her asshole. "Ooooh, no," she cried. "Don't!"

It was too late. Crissy's finger jabbed viciously into Tammy's asshole.
She twisted it, her sister's cries of anguish turning her on. She
jabbed another finger into her sister's asshole, finger-fucking her
tiny shitter as she gobbled hungrily on Tammy's overflowing pussy.

Tammy's eyes widened. The pain of Crissy's ass-stabbing fingers blended
with the pleasure of Crissy's cunt-sucking mouth. It drove Tammy wild
and she bucked and twisted maniacally on the bed.

Crissy darted her tongue into Tammy's fuckhole, felt the thin skin of
her cherry. Hot cream bathed her tongue as she licked quickly through
her sister's gaping cunt slit. Her own hips jerked, her clit brushing
against the sheet. Spasms rippled through her pussy, spasms that made
her eat her squealing sister at a more frenzied pace.

Tammy lurched up, then slammed down. Her hips rotated in tight quick
circles. "My clit! Make me cum!" She shoved forward, mangled her clit
against Crissy's teeth. "Aghhhh!"

Crissy's face was soaked with sticky cunt cream. She twisted her
fingers inside Tammy's asshole, jabbing them in and out quickly, her
sister's screams and twisting body telling her that she was having a
ball. She sucked hard, ready to give Tammy what she wanted--an orgasm.

"Yessss," Tammy hissed, sensing Crissy was ready to make her cum. "I'm
so close. Bite my clit! Make me cum!" She was delirious, her body
quaking, swirling at the peak, needing only Crissy's teeth to take her
over the edge.

Crissy latched her teeth into Tammy's blood-filled clit. With her
sister's clit a prisoner of her teeth, she lashed her tongue over the
ultra-sensitive tip. Cream gushed from Tammy's cunt.

Tammy wrenched her body, stiffened, then went into wild frantic
convulsions. "I'm cumming! I'm cumming!" she wailed, not caring who
heard her screams of lust. "I'm creaming, Crissy!"

Crissy knew it. Tammy's pussy-cum was drowning her. She held on tightly
to Tammy's clit, her tongue whipping back and forth over the tip. She
sucked, almost tearing Tammy's clit from her twisting body.

"Aghhhh! I'm cumming! I'm cum ... ing!" Tammy went insane. She pounded
the bed with her fists, lifted her legs, grabbed them by the ankles,
stretching them wide as she twisted her hips and ground her cunt into
her sister's mouth.

Crissy buried her face against Tammy's pussy. She chewed on her clit,
sucked it and whipped it with her tongue. Cum flowed into her mouth,
over her face and down her chin. She jabbed hard, stabbing her fingers
in and out of Tammy's shitter as her older sister thrashed and jerked
on the bed, a prisoner of her mouth and ass-ripping fingers.

Tammy arched her back, then dropped her legs. Her neck strained as her
head snapped from side to side. Her hips lurched up, twisted, then
slammed down, driving Crissy's fingers deeper into her asshole.
"Oooooh, Crissy! I can't stop! I can't stop!"

Crissy didn't want her sister to stop. For the first time in her life,
she was really enjoying sex. Even sucking her sister off was better
than playing with herself alone in bed. She ravaged her sister's pussy,
chewing madly on Tammy's throbbing clit, sucking hard and lashing her
tongue.

Tammy ground her ass down onto Crissy's fingers and screamed as
Crissy's nails raked the walls of her tight shitter. She shoved
forward, mashed her clit into Crissy's chewing teeth. "Ooooh! Oooooh!"
She bucked up, grabbed her flopping tits and mauled them with her
hands.

Crissy chewed harder. She jabbed another finger into her sister's
asshole, making Tammy jerk up from the bed. Her free hand came out from
under Tammy's body and she used her nails on Tammy's sizzling flesh,
clawing it wildly, leaving red lines all over her creamy white skin.

Tammy's legs stiffened. A shuddering explosion ripped through her empty
cunt. She fell back on the bed, twitching, whimpering, her clit and
asshole still controlled by her lust-crazed younger sister. "No ...
more! No more," she begged.

Crissy released her sister's clit and sucked one last time, taking a
river of pussy-cum into her mouth. She yanked her fingers from Tammy's
asshole, then lifted her head from between her legs. Cunt-cum coated
her features, dripped from her chin. "Now, it's my turn," she panted.

Douglas watched it all as Tammy ate Crissy's asshole and pussy until
she climaxed. Slowly and quietly, he stepped away from the partially
open door and went back downstairs, his cock aching and his forehead
dotted with sweat.

"I never had so much fun in my life," Crissy moaned. "After breakfast I
wanna come back up here and do everything all over again."

"When Daddy goes out," Tammy said. "Shit, the way we were screaming, it
was a wonder he didn't come up and catch us."

Crissy giggled. "I wonder what he'd do?"

"Beat our asses," Tammy said, climbing out of bed.

Crissy thought about her father whipping her ass. She shivered,
imagining his big hand cracking her bare ass and turning it hot and
red. "Maybe it would be fun."

"You're crazy," Tammy said. "I'm goin' in my room and get dressed for
breakfast. You better get dressed, too."

"I will," Crissy said dreamily. She rolled out of bed, her thoughts on
her father as she dressed.

                              Chapter 3


Crissy lay quietly in bed, the curtains on the window parted, the moon
lighting the room in erotic shadows. Her legs were spread, the sheet
kicked off her slim body.

"Mmmmm," she purred, rubbing her hands over her nightie, squeezing her
tits through the thin sexy material. "Whatta day."

She slipped her hand into her bikini bottoms, stroking her pussy while
thinking of her sister's mouth sucking frantically at her cunt. "Ooooh,
God."

It had been a fantastic day of sex with her sister. They had made it
together in every room in the house after their father had gone out.

Crissy squeezed her thighs together. Warm pussy-cream oozed from her
fuckhole, coating her fingers as she wondered if she should go into
Tammy's room and wake her up. She decided not to. Tomorrow would be
another day and their father would be gone again.

Douglas tiptoed down the hall, and he peeked into Crissy's room. His
gut churned as he watched his youngest teenaged daughter play with
herself. In seconds, his prick was throbbing, aching painfully in the
tight confines of his pants. He found that his breathing was raspy,
shallow. He fought his lust and hunger for his young daughter, but
couldn't tear himself away from the door. He had to watch.

Crissy squirmed on the bed, her hand caressing the velvety folds of her
sizzling pussy. Her eyes widened and she glimpsed the shadow of her
father in the hall. A gasp caught in her throat, and her first thought
was to cover herself up and feign sleep.

Instead, a hot smile spread over her full mouth. This was her chance.
If he was looking, maybe she could turn him on. Her innocent mind never
conceived anything else happening.

"Ooooh," she murmured softly, massaging her small plump tits through
her nightie. "I'm so hot." She spread her legs again and glided one
hand up through her seeping pussy. "Mmmmm."

Douglas almost choked. The palms of his hands were sweaty and his mouth
was dry. He couldn't stand it. All day the image of his two naked
daughters had haunted him, kept his head reeling.

He coughed loud enough for Crissy to hear, waited a few seconds, then
opened the door.

Crissy's breath caught in her throat. She pretended to be surprised and
quickly brought her hand out from her panties. "Is that you, Daddy?"
she whispered.

"Yes, Crissy," Douglas said hoarsely. "Just checking to see if you were
asleep." He started to go, the ache in his groin keeping him from
leaving his daughter's bedroom.

"Sit with me for a minute, Daddy," Crissy sighed. "Please."

Douglas sat on the edge of the bed. His gut was churning as he leered
at his daughter's small tits pressing against the top of her frilly
nightie. He could see the outline of her swollen nipples and the sight
sent a hot jolt of lust through his cum-crammed balls.

Crissy squirmed on her back and stretched. Her nightie slipped up,
baring her soft belly. Her bikini bottoms hugged her slim hips, leaving
an erotic display of creamy virgin flesh displayed for her father's
pleasure.

Douglas stared, his gaze roaming anxiously over Crissy's lithe body. He
stared at her crotch, where only a few minutes ago the child's hand had
been playing. His breath came out as if someone had kicked him in the
stomach.

"I can't sleep, Daddy," she whispered hotly. "I feel all funny inside."
She squirmed, shivering under her father's leering glances.

She wriggled her hips, parted her legs and inched her nightie up
higher, exposing her rib cage. "Will you rub my belly for me? Maybe
it'll help me to relax."

Douglas groaned as he brought his hand to the silky flesh of his
daughter's stomach and began caressing her. Touching her sent a tremor
caroming through his balls, and it took all of his willpower to keep
from ripping her nightie off and raping her virgin body.

"Mmmmm. It feels good, Daddy," she sighed. She rested her hand on his
thigh and felt him stiffen. Hot spasms ripped through her pussy. She
placed her other hand on his as he moved his hand in wider bolder
strokes. "Nnnnn, I like it, Daddy."

As if he were hypnotized, Douglas watched his hand, covered with hers,
skim her sizzling smooth flesh. "Maybe I should let you get some
sleep." His voice was ragged, coated with desire for his virgin child.

"Oh, no, Daddy," she pouted. "Stay with me." She moved her hand slowly
up his thigh, her fingers an inch away from the bulging hard-on in his
pants.

"Rub me 'til I fall asleep." She inched his hand under her nightie,
causing his fingers to almost touch her small sensitive tits. A soft
sigh escaped her lips.

Douglas fought the urge to span the flesh of his daughter's tits. He
choked back a groan and eased his hand out from under her nightie.

"Oooh, Daddy." She licked her lips and sat up, making sure her hand
rubbed over the bulge in his pants. Touching him made her dizzy. "Give
me a kiss goodnight and you can go."

Douglas leaned forward, expecting to give her a peck on the cheek.
Instead, he found her quickly in his arms, her soft urgent lips parted,
then quickly pressed against his own.

Crissy was out of her mind. She had thrown her arms around him, her
lips fused to his. She darted her tongue into his mouth, whimpering as
she rubbed her body against his.

Douglas couldn't fight his desire any longer. He held her, felt her
tremble in his arms. He sucked on her tongue, roamed her squirming body
with his hands, exploring, sampling the silky flesh of her young body.

"Ooooh, Daddy," Crissy gasped, pulling her mouth from his. "Touch me.
Touch me." She threw herself onto her back, pulled off her nightie and
displayed the soft mounds of her small ripe tits.

"Unnnn," Douglas groaned, his jaw clenched, his eyes feasting hungrily
on his daughter's tits.

Crissy was trembling, waiting, praying her father would do what she
wanted. She arched her back, jutting out her tits. "Touch me, Daddy.
Please."

Douglas brought one large hand to his child's tits. The tip of her
nipple burned into the palm of his hand as he spanned her flesh and
began massaging the pliant meat of her tit. "Crissy," he moaned. "We
shouldn't."

"Ooooh, Daddy," she pouted, writhing on her back. "I like it. Don't
stop."

Douglas couldn't stop. He no longer wanted to. He massaged both her
tits, his prick straining in his pants to be free. "Sweet Crissy," he
moaned huskily.

"Ummmm, Daddy." Her cunt was on fire. She rocked her hips gently,
wallowing in the pleasure of her father's massaging hands. "You're
making me so hot."

She brought her hands to his and made him squeeze her tits with more
urgency. "Are you hot, too, Daddy?" she purred.

"Yes, Crissy." He kneaded her small tits, his eyes devouring her body.

"Take off my panties," she cooed. "Touch my pussy."

Douglas' head was reeling. He squirmed on the bed, brought his hands
down to her wriggling hips and eased her panties down until the silky
blonde hair of her virgin cunt came into view. He choked, his prick
ready to burst in his pants. "Sweet Crissy."

Crissy was breathing hard. She lifted her ass and sighed as her father
whisked off her panties. Quickly, she spread her legs. "Touch my pussy,
Daddy. I'm all wet."

Douglas brought his hand to Crissy's cunt, cupped her moist pussy-mound
as she squirmed against his hand. Warm sticky cream soaked his palm.

"Unnnnn, Daddy." She lay completely naked, legs spread, tits jiggling,
hips rolling as her father fondled and caressed her virgin cunt. "Ooooh
... oooh ... aaaah!"

Douglas kneaded her tits and stroked her cunt. The sweet scent of her
pussy invaded his head, making him dizzy. "Baby," he rasped. "Sweet
innocent baby."

Crissy brought her hand to her father's bulging crotch. She rubbed it,
squeezed, then shuddered as his cock throbbed violently through his
pants. "Let me see your cock, Daddy," she whispered hotly. "I've never
seen a cock before."

Douglas was about to lose his mind. Hearing his daughter talk this way
drove him crazy. "You take it out, Crissy," he groaned.

"Mmmmm, Daddy." Reluctantly, she squirmed away from his hands. "Lay
back on the bed and I'll take off your pants."

Douglas dropped to the bed and stared at his naked daughter. He was
tense, a raging fire in his balls spreading through his body. He
gulped, leered, his gaze fixed on her tits as she quickly undid his
belt and pulled down his zipper.

Crissy was quivering. Without speaking, she pulled her father's pants
down. She sucked in her breath, her eyes widening as his cock seemed to
leap up and stab the air. A soft gasp escaped her parted lips.

Eagerly, she shoved his pants and shorts down around his ankles and
gazed hotly at his towering prick. "It's so big, Daddy," she sighed
breathlessly. "So big!"

"Hold it, Crissy," Douglas groaned. He swallowed, moistening his mouth
as his prick throbbed like a toothache. "Touch it like I touched you."

"Oooh, I will," she panted. "I wanna do everything with it." She licked
her lips and brought her small trembling hands to her father's cock.
Her fingers closed around his prick shaft. His cock twitched and
throbbed.

Searing flashes shot up her arm. It felt hot in her hand, making her
swoon.

"Ahhhh," Douglas moaned, his hips jerking under his daughter's stroking
fingers.

Crissy saw a white drop of jizz seep from his piss-slit. "Is that your
cum, Daddy?" she asked innocently.

"Yeah, baby," he groaned. He was no longer thinking of her as his
daughter. He was too hot. "My balls are filled with cum."

"Mmmm," Crissy sighed. She hefted his huge swollen ball-sac in her
hand. "God, they're heavy." She squeezed them gently, enjoying the
sound of her father's groans.

"Nnnn, baby," he rasped. The drop of cum became larger as more jizz
seeped from his piss-slit. He jerked up, driving his prick through her
fingers. His balls rumbled, swelling even larger as Crissy stroked his
cockshaft and fondled his balls.

"Can I lick your cock, Daddy?"

Douglas twisted on his back. His daughter's soft innocent voice rang in
his head. "Yeah, baby. Kiss it. Do anything you want to it."

Crissy was creaming. She brought her mouth to his bloated cockhead,
swiped her tongue over his pisser, scooping the thick white glob of cum
into her mouth. "Mmmm, it's delicious."

The touch of her tongue on his cock was like fire. He jammed up and
more cum seeped out. "Lick it, Crissy."

Crissy licked his cockhead again, savoring the taste of his cum. It was
like a whole new world, a hundred times better than what she had done
with her sister.

She wanted to gobble on his prick forever. She slapped out her tongue,
swirling it over his cockhead, soaking it with her spit. More cum
seeped out and she smeared the sticky ooze over her lips. Tremors swept
through her pussy and her entire body was quaking with lust.

"More, Crissy," Douglas groaned. "Lick it all over."

Crissy squirmed on the bed, the light from the window giving her a good
view of his long thick cock. "Ooooh, Daddy. It's beautiful." She
brought her mouth to it, kissed his cockshaft and enjoyed her father's
groans of pleasure.

"Don't talk, baby. Lick it."

Crissy parted her lips, then clamped them over his hard throbbing
cockshaft. She glided her lips up and down his long piece of hot
cockmeat, drenching it in spit. Her tongue flicked out, caressing his
cockshaft as her head moved up and down.

"Yeah, baby," Douglas rasped. "Lick it. Suck it!"

"Yes, Daddy," Crissy panted. She slobbered spit all over his fat prick
shaft, slapped her tongue over his balls and coated them with her
drool. The rough texture of his ball-sac excited her and she whimpered,
knowing that his balls were stuffed with the tangy tasting cum.

Douglas jerked up from the bed. "Your mouth, baby. Put it in your
mouth."

Breathing hard, Crissy slurped her way up from his balls and over his
prick shaft. She reached his bloated cockhead and opened her mouth. In
a flash, she swallowed his cockhead into her mouth.

"Unnn, Crissy." He squirmed on his back, forcing himself not to lunge
up and rip into his daughter's tight throat with his prick. His gut
churned as the heat of her eager mouth invaded his cockshaft,
tantalized his swollen balls. "Crissy! Baby!"

Crissy inched his prick into her mouth, his cockhead grazing along the
roof of her mouth. She wiggled her tongue and heard her father gasp.
Turning him on and giving him pleasure made her feel like a woman.

"Try to get it all in your mouth, baby," Douglas pleaded. "Take it slow
and easy."

Crissy wanted to please her father more than anything else in the
world. She gripped his cockshaft at the base and sucked. She eased the
head of his prick into her throat, choking back a gag as she breathed
hard through her nose.

"Yeah, baby." He jerked his hips, the head of his prick penetrating her
throat. "Relax, baby. Relax."

Crissy listened. She wanted every inch of his prick in her mouth.
Gulping, she shoved her face forward. His cockhead speared her throat,
throbbing. Eyes bulging, she forced more of his prick into her throat
until her wet clinging lips touched her fingers.

Douglas' balls felt as if they would burst. He jabbed up, smashing her
lips into her fingers. "Baby! Suck! Suck!"

Greedily, Crissy sucked on his cock. It was stretching her throat,
making her hungry for every inch. She pulled her hand away and slammed
her head forward, taking his cock to the root. Gurgling, she mashed her
lips against his groin, his prick completely buried.

"Yeah," Douglas groaned. He stared down at his daughter. He jabbed up,
his cock skewering her mouth. He felt her teeth and tongue on his
prick. His face twisted in agony. His balls rumbled, ready to explode.
He fought his lust for the moment. There was plenty of time to cum.

Crissy loved what she was doing. It was better than eating Tammy's
pussy. She dragged her teeth along his cock as she came up for air.
When her teeth banged against the ridge of his bell-shaped cockhead,
she stopped. She took one hard deep suck, then popped her mouth off.
"Did I do good, Daddy?"

"Jesus, baby. You're a natural. You took it all on your first try."

"I loved it, Daddy. You taste so good." She licked her lips.

Not having his daughter's hot wet mouth on his prick was driving him
crazy. "Don't stop, Crissy. Suck me some more."

"Can I suck it until you cum?" she asked innocently.

He nodded, his spit-soaked cock stabbing the air. "Until you've sucked
out every drop."

"Ooooh, Daddy. Thinking about it makes me all mushy inside my pussy."
She dropped her head, her long blonde hair spraying out over her
father's groin.

"Don't stop until I tell you," he moaned, not wanting her to screw him
up. "You're gonna get an awful lot of cum in your mouth."

Her father's cum was exactly what Crissy wanted and she had no
intention of stopping until she drained his balls.

With her mouth filled with his cock, Douglas jerked up, fucking her
eager mouth with short punching stabs. He groaned as her teeth scraped
along his cockshaft, twisted as her quick tongue whipped over the
sensitive underside of his prick, and lunged up each time Crissy took a
deep hungry suck on his cockhead.

With her arms stiff, her palms flat against the mattress, Crissy held
her head steady, allowing her father to fuck her face. It had her
crazy. Gurgling noises came from her mouth, blending with her father's
groans.

She lashed her tongue over his cockshaft each time he jammed his cock
up into her mouth. When he jerked back, she sucked deep, making him
twist his hips and groan. She used her teeth, gnawing frantically each
time he fucked his cock into her face. Spit dribbled from her lips,
oozed down his throbbing prick shaft, soaked the thick hair that
surrounded his cock, and trickled down his balls.

Douglas' ass lurched up from the bed, his long thick cock stabbing into
her throat. "Baby," he growled hoarsely. "Ooooh, sweet baby!"

Crissy felt his prick swell in her mouth and sensed by his quickening
pace that he was getting ready to cum. The idea swam in her head and
made the inside of her cunt pulse jealously for her father's cock. She
took a deep suck, then whipped her tongue over his prick as he jabbed
it into her throat.

"I'm there, Crissy! Don't take your mouth away," Douglas was in a
frenzy. He lunged up, driving his prick in and out of her greedy mouth.
His balls rumbled, swelled, ready to explode. He balled his fists, his
body settling into a fast rhythmic pace. "I'm ready, Crissy! Jesus
Christ!"

Her father's lust excited the young virgin. She sucked deeper, chewed
harder, wanting him to cream her face as quickly as possible. One deep
suck had her father's growling voice filling the room, and in the back
of her lust-sopped brain, she wondered if Tammy had awakened and was
watching.

"I'm cumming, Crissy," Douglas roared, not caring if his other daughter
heard or not. "I'm cumming!"

Crissy choked as the first thick stringy wad of her father's cum
spurted into her mouth. She swallowed, gulping at his spewing cock.
More cum shot from his piss-slit, filled her cheeks and oozed down her
throat. She tried swallowing it as fast as it spurted from his
cockhead.

"Keep suckin'," Douglas bellowed. "Don't stop! Suck! Suck!" He was out
of his skull. His balls burst again and his prick jabbed her hot
sucking mouth.

Crissy began bobbing her head, giving her father more fantastic
pleasure as he fucked her throat with his climaxing cock. She slammed
her head down and met his upward lunge, her lips smashing into his
groin. A hot squirting wad of cum shot down her throat.

"Keep suckin'," Douglas growled, his hips drilling his prick up into
her gobbling mouth.

"Chew it! Suck!"

Crissy went insane. What she was doing to her father sent her soaring
into bliss. She sucked, chewed and beat his prick with her tongue. Cum
flooded her mouth, choked her, squirted down her gullet. It gushed from
her nose and mouth, drenched his groin, and drooled down his almost
empty balls.

Douglas arched his back and slammed up into his daughter's face. A jet
stream of cum gushed from his pisser, spurting down her throat.
"Aghhhh!" He dropped back to the bed, twisting as Crissy took the
attack to him.

Crissy slammed her face down, spearing her throat with her father's
squirting cock. She dragged her head back and gnawed at his cockshaft.
She sucked, bringing the cum up from his balls and into her hungry
mouth.

Hissing through clenched teeth, Douglas ravaged his daughter's mouth.
He fucked her face, ripping into her throat, banging her lips each time
her face whacked into his groin. He stiffened, fell back, his balls
almost drained.

Crissy, out of her mind, continued to devour her father's cock. Her
head moved rapidly up and down his prick shaft, her lips gliding
effortlessly along his slippery prick.

Faster and faster, she bobbed her head, her blonde hair whipping across
his groin.

She gulped, his cock about empty. She sucked, wanting every drop.
Drawing in her cheeks, she sucked the last remaining drops of her
father's cum into her greedy mouth.

"Oooh, baby. Enough." Douglas groaned, jerking his hips, his cock
spent, his balls empty. "No more, baby!"

Crissy pulled her mouth off her father's cock and gazed up at him from
glazed blue eyes. "Let me lick you clean," she panted. "I don't want to
waste any of it. It's so delicious."

Douglas let out a groan. "Sure, baby. Just don't suck my cock. It's
sore from your mouth." His muscles relaxed and he leered down at his
naked daughter.

Crissy giggled and licked her lips. White globs of cum stuck in his
cock hair. Stringy wads coated his balls. Like a kitten lapping milk,
Crissy cleaned her father's prick and balls. She sucked the globs of
cum from his cock hair, then when he was clean, she lifted her head,
her innocent face flushed with lust. "Did I do good, Daddy?"

"Fantastic, Crissy. Fantastic."

                              Chapter 4


Crissy was thrilled. She crawled up into her father's arms, rubbing her
hot virgin body against his hard powerful frame. "Am I as good as Mommy
before she left us?" she asked.

"Better, baby," Douglas rasped, cradling his child in his arms.

"Oooh, Daddy." She tingled all over, found his mouth and gave him a wet
hungry kiss.

Douglas groaned and sucked on her tongue, his wet limp prick mashed
against her soft belly.

Crissy pulled her mouth away from her father's lips. "Suckin' your cock
was the greatest, but I'm so hot. Will you help me, Daddy?"

Douglas rubbed his child's lithe naked body. His hands cupped the firm
cheeks of her ass, kneading her pliant assmeat. He felt her small tits
mash against his chest, her nipples like hot pokers searing his skin.
"I'll take care of you, baby," he groaned.

"Oooh, Daddy," she sighed. She showered him with kisses, then dropped
her hand down to his limp prick. A hot shiver raced up her arm. "Will
you fuck me, Daddy? I wanna be fucked so bad."

Douglas' head was spinning. He fondled her young writhing body, his
mouth hungry, working frantically over his daughter's neck. He kneaded
her tits, his mouth working down her soft creamy body. "As soon as my
cock's hard again, Crissy," he said.

"Oh, Daddy! I'm burning up!" She lay on her back, her pussy on fire,
juices flowing, coating her cunt in filmy cream. "Suck my titties,
Daddy! Suck 'em!"

Douglas' urgent mouth found the small plump mounds of his daughter's
tits. He sucked hard, making Crissy whimper with glee. He chewed on her
nipples, working his tongue over the hard bullet tips.

Crissy squirmed on her back. She scratched her nails through her
father's hair, then pressed his mouth to her tits. "Ooooh, Daddy!
Daddy!"

Douglas dined on her tits, his hands roaming down to her slim hips. He
dipped one hand between her parted legs, cupping the blonde mound of
her overheated pussy. Juice flowed into his hand.

"Unnnn Daddy!" she gasped, humping her hips and grinding her cunt
against his hand. "Lick me. Lick my pussy before you fuck me."

Douglas was drunk with passion. He chewed his way down his daughter's
virgin body, crawled between her long slender legs. "You a virgin,
baby?" he panted.

"Yes, Daddy. I want you to break my cherry." She squirmed her hips. "I
wanna feel your cock up inside my fuckhole."

Douglas groaned and stared at her pussy. It had been years since he had
broken a cherry and his cock throbbed, growing again, stiffening.

"Lick me, Daddy. Make me hotter." Crissy clawed her way down her slim
body, and she parted the velvety folds of her cunt, exposing her
fuckhole. "I wanna cum, Daddy. God, I'm so hot."

Douglas wanted to fuck her this instant. His cock was hard enough, but
he wasn't going to lose the chance of sucking out a virgin pussy. He
brought his mouth to his daughter's cunt, moaning as his lips clamped
to her wet seeping pussy. His cock, pressed against the mattress,
throbbed, anxious to fill Crissy's virgin fuckhole.

"Ooooh, Daddy!" She humped, twisting her hips, her cunt grinding
against her father's face. "Suck! Suck!" She was out of her skull.

Douglas sucked, using his tongue. She tasted sweet, innocent, and it
drove him crazy. He slipped his hands under her jiggling ass, cupped
her cheeks and squeezed. Warm cream flowed over his face.

Crissy was like a firecracker ready to go off. She whimpered, her hips
rolling, her hands skimming over her flesh. It was like a dream.

Her father was eating out her cunt and soon he would be shoving his
gorgeous cock up inside her virgin pussy. She would truly be a woman.

With her father licking her cunt, and her mind spinning with thoughts
of being fucked, Crissy's pussy exploded. "I'm creaming, Daddy. Ooooh,
I'm cumming!"

Crissy humped up, rolling her hips. Her small creamy tits jiggled.
"Ooooh, Daddy. I'm cumming! Lick me! Lick me!"

Douglas slapped his tongue up through her cunt. Hot virgin pussy-cum
flowed over his face. Hearing his daughter squeal with pleasure drove
him wild. She was delicious and he sucked deeper, drawing her cuntlips
into his mouth.

Orgasms swept through Crissy's writhing body. Her cunt muscles pulsed
against an empty channel. She shoved down and ground her cunt into her
father's mouth. "I'm creaming you, Daddy! Ooooh, God!"

Douglas held onto her ass and feasted on her virgin pussy. Twisted and
bent, his cock ached. He gobbled on her pussy, found her clit and
captured it between his teeth.

Crissy arched her back, slamming her pussy into her father's mouth.
"Bite. Daddy! Make me cum again!"

Spit drooled from her open mouth. Cum gushed from her cunt, drenched
her father's face and soaked the cheeks of her ass.

Douglas chewed, sucked and used his tongue. He nipped her clit with his
teeth, made Crissy screech with joy. His own hips were jerking, his
cock jabbing into the mattress.

Crissy stiffened and fell back to the bed, a quivering mass of flesh.
"Oooooh, Daddy!" She squirmed. "Fuck me! Fuck me!"

Douglas came up from between his daughter's legs. He was crazed with a
desire to ravage his child's body. He pulled his powerful frame up over
Crissy's slim figure and stared down at her flushed passion-filled
face. "Did I eat you as good as Tammy?" he asked with a grin.

"Oh, Daddy!" she gasped. "You know?"

"Yeah, baby. I saw the whole thing this morning."

She felt his cockhead against her stomach. "You mad?"

"No," he panted, his prick throbbing, ready to rip into his daughter's
virgin pussy.

She was too hot to talk about her sister. "Stick it in me, Daddy," she
panted. She humped up and rocked her hips as his cock pressed against
her stomach. "Oooooh, fuck me!"

Douglas brought his lust under control. "It'll hurt, baby."

"I don't care!" she gasped. "I want your cock." She raked his thick
arms with her nails. "Fuck me. Make me a woman."

Douglas eased the bloated head of his cock between the puffy folds of
his daughter's pussy. Hot buttery pussy-cream flowed over his cockhead,
making him groan. He pushed, the head of his prick pressing against the
thin skin of his daughter's cherry.

"Ooooh, Daddy! I feel it. Fuck me. Take my cherry!" She was delirious,
screaming at the top of her lungs.

Douglas stared at her contorted face. He jabbed forward, the head of
his prick ripping through her cherry as if it were tissue paper.
"Baby," he roared, plunging through her virgin fuckhole until his cock
was buried to the hilt. "Sweet, baby!"

"Ayieeee!" Crissy screamed. "Daddy!" She bucked up, twisting, her
teenaged body impaled on her father's stiff cock. "It hurts so bad!"

Hissing through his teeth, he kept his prick buried. The muscles of her
cunt were tightly wrapped around his cockshaft, pulsing, milking his
prick instinctively. "Relax," he whispered. "Relax."

Crissy bucked like a wildcat under her father's cunt-splitting prick.
She twisted her hips, squirmed, but couldn't get free. Her father was
too strong and his cock was too deep. "Take it out!" she cried in a
moment of terror. "Oooooh, please!"

Douglas ignored her pleas, knowing the pain would go away. He moved his
hips slowly, allowing her pussy to adjust to having it stuffed with his
prick. "Easy, baby," he soothed, keeping his raging passion in check.
"The pain will go away."

Crissy thrashed beneath her father, whimpering, the pain unbearable.
She bucked up, jerking her hips. She clawed his arms, her blue eyes
bulging. "Daddy ... it hurts!"

Douglas eased back, pushed forward, his cock slipping easily into her
pussy. "Unnn, baby."

"Aghhhh!" Crissy wailed. She twisted her hips as her father stuffed her
cunt. This time when he stabbed into her cunt, the pain disappeared and
a hot sizzling warmth took its place. Pain gone, her passion quickly
returned, turning her back into a hot crazed sex kitten. "Daddy!
Daddy!"

"Yeah, baby!" He grinned. "I told you." He eased back, leaving only the
head of his bloated cock buried inside his daughter's pussy. "Ride it,
Crissy."

"Yes, Daddy," she panted. Crissy lifted her hips, her stretched cunt
gliding wetly over her father's buried prick. "Unnnn. Oooooh, it feels
so good! So damn fuckin' good!"

Douglas' balls swelled. He leered down, watched as his lust-crazed
teenaged daughter fucked herself madly on his stiff prick. "Enjoy,
baby. Fuck yourself blind."

"I am," she squealed. "Ooooh, Daddy. It's the best feeling in the
world." Crissy bucked up. The syrupy juice in her pussy bathed his fat
cockshaft. Her muscles pulsed rapidly against his prick. She twisted
her hips and ground her clit against his hard groin. "Ooooh, Christ,
I'm goin' crazy."

"Not yet, baby," he assured her. "It gets even better." To give her an
example, he drove his hips forward, pounding her wriggling body back
into the mattress. He eased back, lunged again, then twisted his hips,
his cockhead gouging the tight wet walls of her sizzling cunt.

"Ahhhh! Yessss!" She bucked up and met his thrusting stabs, her clit
mashed by his groin. "Aghhhhh! Don't stop! Keep fuckin' me, Daddy!"

Douglas fucked hard, smashing his daughter's body between his hard
driving fame and mattress. With his cock buried, he jerked his hips,
twisting his long fat prick inside her fuckhole. His teeth clenched,
his jaw tight, his cock throbbed inside her tight steamy pussy. "Baby."

With her pussy filled with her father's prick, Crissy went wild. She
thrashed beneath him, her tits jiggling, her fingers kneading his stiff
muscled arms. "I'm in heaven, Daddy. Make me cum."

"Soon, baby," he rasped, stabbing her gulping cunt with long teasingly
slow strokes. "When you can't stand the pleasure anymore."

Tammy opened the door and stared into Crissy's bedroom. A gasp caught
in her throat and her knees went weak. "Oh, God," she whispered,
watching her father slam his cock into Crissy's pussy. "Ooooh, God."

Neither Crissy nor her father heard or saw Tammy. They were too busy
fucking.

Crissy trembled. Hot spasms rippled through her pussy each time her
father plunged his cock into her sopping-wet hole. She quivered, using
her cunt muscles every time her father eased back and dragged his cock
from her cunt hole. "Faster, Daddy! I'm going crazy."

Douglas was going crazy, too. Fucking his daughter's tight wet pussy
had his balls rumbling and his cockshaft thickening with blood. "How's
this, baby?" he growled, shortening his strokes and adding more power
behind the quickening thrusts.

"Oooooh, my God! Yes! Yes!" She felt his fat throbbing cock inside her
cunt. Her hips bucked and she thrust her cunt forward. "You're so deep,
Daddy!"

With the next plunge, Douglas smacked his groin against her trembling
body. The head of his cock stabbed deep. "Unnn, Crissy!"

"Fuck me, Daddy!" she wailed, her cunt gliding wetly along his cum-
swelled hard-on. Her hips came ramming up, her pussy gobbling on his
buried cockshaft. Her ass crashed back to the bed as her father pounded
her into the mattress. She moaned, matching his quick stabbing thrusts
with her own jerky moves.

Douglas fucked into her juicy pussy with fast-paced lunges. "Baby." His
broad chest heaved as his breathing grew more intense. Hard jabs drove
his cock into her squiggling body. He drilled her pussy, fucking the
entire length of his prick into her frothy cunt.

"Daddy! I'm so close!" She lunged up, twisting her hips.

Douglas rammed back, his cock slicing through her mushy fuckhole. He
felt her gripping cunt muscles squeeze his stabbing cockshaft. "Baby
... you're dynamite!"

"Ooooh, Daddy!" His words made her head spin. She banged her cunt onto
his cock and ground her clit against his hard groin. "I feel so full!"
Her slim sizzling body wiggled frantically on the bed as whimpering
sobs escaped her drooling mouth.

"Daddy!" The last hard driving fuck-thrust triggered her orgasm. She
began to shake. Her legs came around his back and locked, her heels
digging into his hips.

"I'm cumming! I'm ... cumming!" Orgasms ripped through her pussy. Her
cunt flooded with her pussy-cum, bathing her father's stabbing prick.
Her pussy pulsed rapidly, eager for the load of cum buried in her
father's swinging balls.

"I'm cumming, Daddy. I'm creaming all the fuck over!" Crissy went
insane.

Douglas saw his daughter's face twist into an expression of lust. He
knew she was creaming, felt the orgasms in her pussy attack his cock.
It blew his mind. He fucked her harder, making her scream.

"Cum, Daddy!" she squealed. "Cum! Cum!"

With his next stabbing thrust, Douglas' balls erupted. Hot thick cum
shot up through his pounding prick, spewing from his pisser. Thick
globs of cum whitewashed his daughter's tight cunt. "I'm cumming, baby!
Jesus Christ. I'm cumming!"

Crissy arched her back. The hot squirting cum from her father's prick
sent her screaming into another series of fantastic orgasms. She lunged
up, rocking her hips, craving more of his spewing prick. "I feel your
cum, Daddy! Oooooh, keep cumming! Fuck me!"

Hot sticky cum poured from her pussy each time her father rammed his
cock into her wiggling body. She felt his cum fill her body and it
drove her mad. "Harder, Daddy! Faster!"

Her ass hammered the bed. Her tits shook, the nipples sore and swollen.
"I'm still cumming!" She bucked up, twisting her clit against his groin
as he slammed her back to the bed.

Douglas pounded her violently. His hips jabbed forward at blinding
speed, driving his cock to the root each time. "Baby," he roared, his
muscles straining, his arms weakening.

Crissy's cum greased her father's drilling cockshaft. It mixed with his
cum inside her fuckhole, gushed out down her cunt crack and formed a
puddle on the sheet. A gurgling moan escaped her mouth. It was as if
her father's cock had stabbed into her throat. "Your ... cock ...
ooooh, Daddy! I ..." She was delirious.

Douglas stared from glazed eyes at his daughter's beautiful face. In
the throes of passion, her face had lost its innocence. His gut knotted
as his cum-stained balls slapped against her quivering body with each
stab into her squishy cunt.

Crissy was in bliss. Her hips moved at the same frantic pace her father
had set. Her ass came off the bed, her hips bucked, and she moaned when
he drove her squirming twisting body back onto the bed. "Ooooh, Daddy!"
She stiffened, raking his chest. "Ahhhh!"

Douglas fucked hard, his balls about drained. His arms crumbled and he
crushed her beneath him, his hips still stabbing, slicing his cock in
and out of her climaxing pussy.

Crissy found his neck with her mouth and chewed. Her arms circled his
back, and she held him tight. She lunged up, moaning, her tits crushed
against his chest. "Ooooh, Daddy!"

Douglas ground her back onto the bed, his hands skimming under her
body, clutching the cheeks of her jiggling ass. Panting, his groans
lost in her throat, he fucked her maniacally until she lay limp and
weak beneath him.

Crissy purred like a contented cat. She stroked his back lovingly. Her
hips twitched and her legs fell away from his body. She lay there,
savoring her cum-stuffed cunt. "I'm a woman, Daddy," she whispered.

Douglas rolled off his daughter's body and panted as he caught his
breath, his prick limp, sticky, lying like a slab of meat against his
thigh. "You're better than your mother ever was."

"Mmmm, Daddy," she cooed, rolling into his arms. It was then that she
spotted Tammy standing at the door. "Tammy!"

Douglas lifted his head. "How ... long have you been there?"

"Long enough to want you to do the same thing to me," Tammy sighed. She
ran into the bedroom and joined them on the bed.

"I'll never make it through the night," Douglas groaned happily.

"I think you will," Tammy said, scampering down to his limp cock.

Crissy licked his chest. "I know you will."


                              Chapter 5


Tammy licked her father's prick, tasting the juices of Crissy's pussy.
"You gonna break my cherry, too, Daddy?" she cooed.

"When you get me hard," he groaned. He stroked Crissy's hair as she
nibbled on his chest.

"Ooooh, I'll get you hard," Tammy giggled. She wanted her father's cock
as badly as Crissy had wanted it. She crawled between his legs, then
lapped her tongue over his balls. She was trembling, knowing once his
prick was hard, her father would rip away her cherry.

"You want any help?" Crissy sighed. She nibbled her way across her
father's chest. She licked him, her tongue burning a path to his groin.

"Sure," Tammy said. "We'll make him crazy and then he can bust me open
like he busted you."

Crissy giggled. It was the first time in her life she had beaten her
older sister at anything. "You'll love it, Tammy," she said, bragging.
"It hurts, but, oh, does it feel good."

Douglas moaned under the hot licking mouths of his two daughters. He
heaved a sigh, knowing it would be a long night. "Have fun, kids."

"We will, Daddy!" Crissy giggled. She joined her sister at her father's
limp prick. "He sucked my cunt, too," she boasted.

Tammy contained her jealousy. They had all night and she was sure that
whatever their father did to Crissy, he would do to her. She licked her
tongue up over his balls.

Crissy sucked the head of his cock into her mouth. She swirled her
tongue over his prick-head, skimming into his pisser.

"Jesus," Douglas groaned, wondering if he would survive the night.

"I sucked him off first," Crissy continued to taunt. "His cum was
delicious!"

Tammy ignored her and licked her father's balls.

"Get on your side, Daddy," Crissy said. "I'll lick your ass while Tammy
sucks you hard again." She winked at her sister.

Douglas did as his daughter asked, eager to feel Crissy's mouth on his
ass. "Ream me, baby."

"Mmmmm, you look great, Daddy," she mewled. She licked his hips, then
slithered her tongue over his ass. "Mmmmm."

Tammy feasted on her father's limp cock. She brought his meaty prick
into her mouth and gently chewed, enjoying his moans of pleasure. She
had to admit, even to herself, that Crissy's boldness and oversexed
personality was making this all possible. She didn't know how it had
happened, she only cared that it did.

Douglas jerked his hips, his cock filling Tammy's mouth. He jerked
back, slammed his ass against Crissy's face. "God, I must be the
luckiest man alive," he moaned.

Crissy plunged her tongue into his ass, working her spit into his
shitter. Already, the passion her father's cock had satisfied her with
earlier began to tickle her again deep in her pussy. She sucked hard,
snaking her tongue deep, her hands clawing his back.

Tammy felt the strength return to her father's cock. It spurred her on.
She chewed hungrily, feeling it begin to throb in her mouth.

"Keep suckin', Tammy," Douglas groaned. His gut churned and his balls
began to swell with a new load of jizz.

Crissy pulled her tongue from her father's asshole. She sucked on his
asscheeks, turning his flesh red and blotchy. Moaning, she writhed on
the bed, her hot little pussy getting all creamy. She rubbed her body
against the back of his legs, mashing her tits against him. "Ooooh,
Daddy. I love sucking your ass."

Douglas groaned, thrashing between his two sex-crazed daughters. "I'm
getting hard, Crissy. Tammy's good."

Tammy swelled with pride. She popped her mouth off his cock and chewed
his prick shaft. Warm spit soaked his cockshaft, dribbled to the sheet.

Crissy didn't care that Tammy could suck cock. She knew she was
terrific and she had been to her father's prick first, had her cherry
busted first, and now she was sucking on his ass. Another first. It was
all that mattered.

Tammy fondled his balls and, slipping her hand between his legs, she
played with Crissy's tits. Her virgin pussy was soaked, pulsing, greedy
for her father's cock. She lathered his prick with spit, trembling as
it grew thicker and longer.

Crissy gasped under her sister's manipulating fingers. She spread the
cheeks of her father's ass, buried her face, and plunged her tongue
back into his asshole. She reached around, her fingers finding Tammy's
pussy. She stroked her virgin cunt slit, enjoying the sticky warmth of
her sister's cream as it flowed over her fingers.

Tammy moaned, humping her sister's fingers as she gobbled hungrily on
her father's almost stiff cock.

Douglas was sandwiched between them, Tammy on his prick, Crissy on his
ass. He jerked, slamming his prick into Tammy's mouth.

Tammy gagged, pulled her mouth away. Panting, she stared at his prick.
It was jutting out from his groin stiff as a board. "It's hard."

Crissy came away from her father's ass, rolled him onto his back and
stared at his prick. "Let's share him for awhile," she panted.

Tammy, greedy for it all, gobbled his cock into her mouth. She wasn't
going to give up his cock unless she had to. She plunged her head down,
forcing the entire length into her throat. She sucked, her head bobbing
up and down.

Crissy watched. "I can do that, too," she said smugly.

Douglas could only groan. He slammed up into Tammy's mouth and looked
at Crissy. "For once, Baby ... no fighting."

Crissy giggled. "There's only one of you. What else can we do?" She
joined her sister, chewing on the base of his prick as Tammy gobbled
greedily on his bloated cockhead.

Both girls licked, sucked, and nibbled on their father's cock. Their
lips met and they kissed each other, their tongues swirling around
their father's throbbing hard-on. Up and down his cock, their hot
greedy mouths worked their magic, meeting at his bell-shaped pricktip,
where they kissed again, their spit dribbling down all over his balls.

"Jesus Christ," Douglas groaned. His hairy balls ached. He jerked up,
writhing in the hot sucking mouths of his two sex-crazed daughters.
"You two little bitches are fabulous."

Crissy, having sucked her father off before, relinquished his cock to
Tammy. "You suck him," she purred. "I'll take care of the rest of his
body." She nibbled her hungry mouth all over his groin, worked her way
up to his chest. Her hot mouth slobbered over his heavy chest, chewed
and sucked on his nipples.

With Crissy gone, Tammy feasted on her father's cock. She sucked it
into her mouth, whipped her tongue over his bloated prick-head, then
gobbled it into her throat. Cock hair tickled her nose as his prick
throbbed deep in her gullet. Her pussy, virgin and wet, pulsed as she
realized that soon his cock would be ripping through her cherry and
making her a woman like Crissy. It drove her wild. "Unnnnn," she
moaned, her throat stuffed with his cock.

Crissy was panting, her young body on fire. She writhed, rubbing her
soft flesh against her father's hard frame. "Ooooh, Daddy. Everything
is so wonderful."

"I know, baby," Douglas groaned. He caressed Crissy, his hips jerking,
driving his cock in and out of Tammy's hot sucking mouth.

Crissy fused her mouth to her father's, plunged her tongue and
explored. Her tits mashed against his chest, and she pressed her cunt
against his jerking hips, enjoying the friction against her clit.

Douglas sucked his daughter's invading tongue. He squirmed against her
young soft body. His hips lunged up, his cock slamming into Tammy's
throat as he enjoyed both his children to the fullest.

Crissy pulled her mouth from her father's. "Fuck Tammy now," she
panted. "Let me watch you rip out her cherry." She was trembling,
overheated and eager to watch Tammy get fucked.

Douglas groaned. Two cherries in one night. He jerked as Tammy's mouth
gnawed on his hard throbbing cock. "I'm ready. Jesus, am I ready."

Tammy dragged her teeth up the length of her father's cock. "So am I,
Daddy," she whimpered. She looked at his prick and shivered. It would
soon be buried in her pussy. "Ooooh, shit, I'm creaming already."

"So am I," Crissy purred.

Tammy threw herself on her back, spread her legs and moaned. "Fuck me,
Daddy. Make me a woman, like Crissy." She brought her fingers down to
her virgin cunt and parted the slippery folds of her turned-on pussy.
"Rip me open."

Douglas stared at Tammy's red silky pussy hair. Frothy white cunt-cream
oozed from her virgin pussy. "You're sopping wet, baby."

"Stick it in me, Daddy!" she gasped, trembling with anticipation. "Fuck
me!" Her hips wiggled frantically as she stroked her own cunt.

Crissy stared at her sister, remembering how great she had tasted. She
licked her lips. "Not that way, Tammy. Get on your hands and knees."
She giggled. "Pretend you're a dog."

"Yeah," Tammy moaned. She scrambled onto her hands and knees, wiggling
her ass. "Fuck me, Daddy."

Crissy crawled over in front of her sister, got on her hands and knees,
and shook her ass. "You can lick my cunt hole while Daddy fucks you."

Tammy swooned, her head reeling. She looked back at her father,
wondering if he minded.

"He knows, Tammy," Crissy giggled. "He watched us today when we were
fuckin' around together."

Douglas leered at his two children. It was wild. His gaze fell to
Tammy's virgin cunt and his prick seemed to grow another two inches. He
rubbed her ass, his fingers gliding down between her creamy asscheeks.

"Ooooh, Daddy," Tammy sighed. The inside of her cunt contracted. "Stick
it in me."

Crissy crawled around behind her sister. She gripped her father's huge
cock. "Let me put it in, Daddy."

Douglas groaned, jerking his cock through Crissy's fingers. His fingers
still caressed the tiny wrinkled crack of Tammy's shitter. He looked at
Crissy and saw the lust in her innocent blue eyes, then stared at
Tammy's virgin fuckhole. "Whewww, whatta night this is goin' to be."

Crissy tugged on his cock, pulling him closer to Tammy's jiggling ass.
Douglas stroked his cock across her virgin pussyslit, watching as hot
buttery cunt-cream coated the head of his cock. "God, Tammy's really
creaming."

"Ooooh, Daddy!" Tammy wailed. "Don't tease me." She was shaking,
anxious for her father to fuck her.

Douglas ignored his daughter's pleas and continued to torture her. He
reached under, grabbed one of Tammy's large tits and squeezed. "You'll
get it, Tammy."

He was seething with desire. "No more fooling around, Tammy," he
grunted, taking his hand off his prick. He stroked his cock through
Tammy's puffy cuntlips while Crissy pulled on Tammy's tits. "You ready,
baby?"

"Yes, Daddy!" Tammy squealed. "Fuck me!"

Douglas pushed the head of his cock into his daughter's cunt. His
prick-head pressed against her cherry and he paused, savoring the
moment.

"Ooooh, Crissy, I feel it!" Tammy began to tremble.

"Hard, Daddy," Crissy urged. "Ram it in her!"

Douglas groaned, the heat of his daughter's cunt sending hot jolts of
passion through his cock shaft. He held her hips, bringing Tammy to a
feverish pitch before ripping his cock through the thin skin of her
cherry.

"Do it, Daddy!" Tammy screeched. She shoved back, moaning as the
pressure on her cherry increased.

Douglas held his lust in check, the hot fire in Tammy's pussy driving
him wild.

Crissy stared, first at Tammy's flushed face, then at her father. "Fuck
her, Daddy. Make her howl."

Douglas couldn't take the strain any longer. Like an enraged lion, he
slammed forward,his cock cutting through her cherry. He didn't stop
until his groin was flush with her quivering asscheeks.

Tammy's eyes bulged and her face twisted in agony. "Ayyieeee!" she
screeched, thrashing her hips in a desperate effort to free her body of
the terrible pain that her father's cock was causing.

Crissy saw the pain on her sister's face. "Fuck her, Daddy!" she
shrieked. Seeing her sister thrashing in agony turned her on. "Fuck her
hard!"

Douglas ignored Crissy's shouts. He held his cock deep in Tammy's
pussy, feeling the muscles of her cunt trying to dislodge his prick.
"Easy, Tammy. Easy!"

Tammy jerked, her eyes filling with tears. Her mouth twisted, and she
began to pant like a puppy, hoping the horrible pain would go away. "It
hurts, Daddy!"

Crissy giggled. She grabbed her sister's tits, squeezed them hard,
adding to Tammy's pain. "You'll be begging for his cock in a minute,"
she moaned.

Tammy jerked forward, twisting her shoulders. The pain in her pussy and
the pain in her tits had her head spinning. She screamed and jerked her
hips, but her father's cock stayed buried to the hilt.

Douglas eased back, then pushed slowly forward, allowing his screaming
daughter to adjust to his thick prick. He fucked her slow and felt the
juices in her pussy begin to flow again. A grin of triumph spread over
his face. Tammy was just like Crissy. They were both hot for cock.

Tammy's pain-racked face changed to a mask of lust. "Ooooh, Daddy!" she
wailed, feeling his cock begin to glide painlessly in and out of her
pussy. "I like it. Oooooh, Daddy!"

Crissy creamed as she watched Tammy enjoy their father's prick. "Fuck
him back, Tammy. Ride his cock."

Tammy rocked on her hands and knees. The pleasure in her pussy was
mounting. "Ooooh, it feels so good!" She jerked back, her now-drenched
pussy gobbling hungrily on her father's prick each time he eased it
into her pussy.

Douglas felt the muscles of her cunt clamp around his thrusting
cockshaft. His balls ached, slapping against the backs of her thighs.
He filled her cunt with his cock and moaned. "You're tight, baby. Nice
and tight. Just like Crissy."

"Ooooh, Daddy," she crooned, swaying back and forth. "I never knew it
could feel so good."

Crissy felt a tinge of jealousy, but quickly erased it. She was going
to have to share her father and there was nothing she could do about
it. "Make her cum, Daddy!"

"Not yet!" Tammy cried out. "Let me enjoy my first fuck!" She rotated
her hips and the hungry muscles of her cunt pulsed against the stiff
bloated meat of her father's cock.

Crissy crawled back in front of her sister's face and presented her
with the cheeks of her ass. "You can start licking my asshole anytime
you want, Tammy." She wiggled her ass, her body tingling.

Tammy stared at her sister's ass. When her sister's cunt was stuffed
full of her father's prick, Crissy's fuckhole looked even more
delicious than it had this morning. She flicked out her tongue,
slapping it over the creamy flesh of Crissy's ass. She soaked it with
spit, then began to chew on the sweet meat of her asscheeks.

"Oooooh, Tammy," Crissy moaned, wiggling her hips. "Go in my asshole.
Ream me, Tammy! Tongue my shitter."

Tammy was in bliss. She thrived on her father's groans as she massaged
his slowly pumping cock with her cunt. She used her tongue on Crissy's
ass, enjoying her sister's whimpering sighs of joy. Everything was
fabulous.

Douglas explored Tammy's body with his hands, his gaze flowing over her
asscheeks, up her smooth back, over her head to Crissy's ass. "Jesus,
whatta sight." He jabbed, twisting his hips, his cock gouging at the
spongy walls of his daughter's sopping wet pussy.

"Fuck her, Daddy!" Crissy shouted as she mashed her ass onto Tammy's
face. Her head snapped back. Tammy's tongue had plunged deep in her
asshole. "Oooooh, Tammy!"

Tammy was out of her mind. She was getting fucked by her father, and at
the same time, she was eating her sister's asshole. Things couldn't be
better.

Crissy collapsed on the bed, her ass high in the air, Tammy's exploring
tongue driving her wild. Spittle drooled from her panting mouth and she
clawed the sheets, whimpering and writhing in bliss. "Ooooh, Tammy. I'm
creaming." She struggled, reached under, grabbed her own pussy and
began to fondle it roughly.

Douglas eased his cock from Tammy's tight pussy. He felt the tremendous
pressure of her wet grease-lined cunt hole try to keep him captive.
With only the head of his prick inside Tammy's cunt, he slammed
forward, drilling his prick to the root. He fucked her over and over
again.

"Baby," he groaned, each time he whacked his cock into her cunt.
"Unnnn, Tammy!"

Each slamming thrust of her father's cock made Tammy howl. At the same
time, it drove her face against the cheeks of Crissy's ass and her
tongue into her asshole. Both Crissy's screams and her father's grunts
had her swirling on a cloud of lust.

Douglas held his daughter's hips in his big hands, his fingers sinking
into her pliant assmeat. He moved slowly, with long powerful strokes,
stuffing her cunt with his cock, then pulling out, torturing Tammy
until she was sobbing hysterically for him to quicken his pace.

Tammy's screams were muffled against Crissy's ass. Lights flashed
behind her fluttering eyelids. Her father's cock was the most wonderful
thing in the world and he was driving her insane. His expert jabs were
keeping her head spinning and she was glad that she had never given a
boy her cherry. It would not have been as exciting.

Crissy was writhing maniacally on the bed, her ass plastered against
Tammy's face and her own fingers pulling and clawing at her own clit.
She jerked, gasping for air as she strained her neck to lift her head.
"Deeper, Tammy! Go deeper!"

Tammy gobbled hungrily on Crissy's ass, her tongue plunging deep each
time her father stabbed his cock into her pussy. She shuddered, waiting
for each thrust of her father's cock. The agony between each stab felt
like an eternity and she wanted it faster.

She pulled her face from Crissy's ass. "Faster, Daddy! Please!" She
rocked her hips, lunging back, using her natural instincts to drive her
father crazy.

Douglas, his lust boiling in his balls, picked up the pace, stabbing
his cock faster into Tammy's spongy wet cunt. He was greeted with more
soupy cunt-cream. It bathed his prick, oozed out from between her
cuntlips and ran down his swinging balls.

"Yeses, Daddy!" Tammy screamed, thrilled with the quickening pace.
"Oooooh, harder, Daddy! Harder!"

Douglas obliged his screaming child. He fucked her with hard lightning
jabs. His cock skewered her cunt deeply. Muscles tugged rapidly on his
pounding cockshaft. "Baby," he grunted, his balls rumbling in agony.

With her father fucking her the way she wanted, Tammy went back to
gobbling Crissy's asshole. She reamed her sister's shitter with her
tongue and chewed viciously on her soft tender asscheeks, repaying her
sister for mauling her tits so roughly. Spit slobbered from her mouth
each time she licked and chewed Crissy's asscrack.

Crissy moaned and slammed back, her own fingers urgently pulling and
rubbing her pulsing clit. She jabbed a finger into her pussy, smeared
the creamy juice over her clit and sobbed with passion.

Tammy was being battered by them both. Douglas was pounding her pussy
and Crissy was mashing her face. She rocked on her hands and knees,
drowning in the pleasure of her father's jabbing prick. Her huge tits
swelled, hanging like heavy weights, ready to explode. She bit Crissy's
ass and enjoyed her sister's screams.

Douglas watched the fantastic sight of his two naked daughters. His
balls rumbled, aching to be rid of the thick cum that churned like
lava. He brought his gaze back to Tammy's jiggling ass, spread her
cheeks and gazed hotly at her wrinkled asshole. "Soon, baby," he
groaned, his cock swelling, ready to burst.

Douglas' ears were bombarded by the screams and moans of his two lust-
crazed children. He stared at his cock, enjoying the sight of his prick
shaft skewering her tight pussy. Warm sudsy cream clung to his jabbing
cockshaft. The squishing sounds of her pussy blended with his
daughter's wails of pleasure. He groaned and jabbed faster, his groin
whacking against the cheeks of her ass.

Tammy went insane. Never in her young life had she expected this. She
swooned, her young mind conjuring up an image of what she looked like
with her father fucking her pussy and her mouth plastered to Crissy's
ass. It overwhelmed her.

"Unnnn," she moaned, the garbled sound of her voice lost in Crissy's
asshole. Her body responded to her erotic image. She jerked, twisted,
and bucked under her father's driving cock. Spasms rippled through her
body. Spit gurgled in her throat. She choked, forcing her spit into
Crissy's asshole. Her hips matched her father's pace as she climbed
toward a mind-blowing orgasm.

Douglas slammed his prick into her pussy, his groin slapping noisily
against the cheeks of her jiggling ass. Each thrust sliced his cock
through the buttery ooze of her cream as it flowed from her pulsing
cunt walls. His balls ached, each slap against her body reminding him
that his cum needed to be released. He groaned and bit his bottom lip,
fighting the urge to empty his balls.

"Cum, Tammy," he groaned, wanting his child to cream first. "Cum!"

Tammy pulled her drooling mouth from Crissy's asshole. The room was
spinning, her body felt as if it were on fire. "I'm ready, Daddy. I'm
ready!"

Crissy wasn't going to miss the best part. She rolled away and watched
as her father fucked Tammy with hard demanding thrusts. Each stab
brought a tremor to her pussy and she writhed and whimpered frantically
on the bed, slobber oozing from her mouth.

"Fuck her, Daddy! Make her cream!" Crissy was insane. "Cream him,
Tammy. Drown his fuckin' cock!" She sat up and stared at them both, her
tits jiggling as she wiggled her ass on the bed.

"Daddy! Daddy!" Tammy went into spasm. "I'm cumming! Oooooh, I'm
cumming!"

Her orgasm gripped her, sent her swirling into a screaming twisting
fit. Hot orgasms ravaged her pussy, making her screech at the top of
her lungs.

Douglas slammed into her climaxing pussy. The hot pulsing muscles on
his jabbing cockshaft made the cum rumble in his balls. He could no
longer hold back the fire in his prick. His jabbing hips became a blur.

"I'm cumming," he roared. Hard demonic fuck-stabs forced the cum from
his balls. Thick globs of white jizz sprayed from his cock head,
spurting into the bubbling furnace of Tammy's climaxing cunt.

"I'm cumming," he bellowed. "I'm creaming you, baby!" His cock swelled,
his pricktip spewing out great globs of jism. It gushed into her
exploding cunt. "Aghhhh ... baby!"

Crissy watched. It was like seeing herself. She felt each stab of her
father's cock as it cut into Tammy's climaxing cunt. She licked her
lips, feeding on the lust created by her father and sister. "Fuck her,
Daddy! Harder!"

Douglas fucked Tammy with vicious jabs. His cock, still spurting jizz,
reached deep inside Tammy's cunt hole, stretching it, flooding it. He
looked at Crissy, a lewd grin on his lust-contorted face.

Crissy pawed her own clit, sending hot orgasms through her empty pussy.
She rocked on her ass and watched Tammy cream. "Cream Daddy, Tammy.
Milk his fuckin' cock."

Tammy was out of her head. She met each pounding thrust, absorbed it,
shuddering and squealing as their bodies clashed. "I'm still cumming,
Daddy! Oooooh, God!"

Tammy twisted her head around saw her father behind her. It sent her
reeling and another orgasm shot through her cunt like a red-hot bullet.
Her head dropped, snapping from side to side, her red hair lashing
across her twisted face.

Hot cum spurted from Douglas' dilated pisser. Cum flooded her pussy,
greased her cunt hole, his cock fucking faster and faster through the
soupy mixture of both their juices. He mauled her hips, every muscle in
his body straining, bulging as he fucked his squealing daughter
mercilessly.

Tammy battled back as Crissy cheered, her voice blending with their
screams and howls. She felt each squirt of her father's cum. Each wad
ignited another orgasm in her pussy. She tossed her head around, stared
at Crissy. "Ooooh, Crissy. I'm in heaven."

She shoved back, almost collapsing. "More, Daddy! More!" She was as
greedy as Crissy had been. She wanted every drop. "Harder! Harder!"

Her green eyes floated in her head. "He's creaming me, Crissy. I'm
drowning!" Tammy was hysterical. Her arms crumbled and her face crashed
onto the mattress, her pussy still impaled on her father's drilling
cock. She raked the sheets, stretching, twisting, wrenching her body
maniacally as her father pounded her.

Douglas was just about drained. His stabbing thrusts slowed, his balls
just about empty. The last few squirts oozed from his piss-hole without
any power. He groaned and stopped, his chest heaving as he caught his
breath.

"Enough, baby," he rasped. His prick was still trapped inside Tammy's
pussy. It began to shrink, the muscles of her cunt refusing to let it
go. He groaned again and rode the last of Tammy's orgasms, then fell
back, his prick popping from her body.

"Ahhhhh!" Tammy cried, her body empty. She fell to the bed, whimpering
and writhing in ecstasy. She was exhausted, sated like never before in
her life. "Ooooh, Daddy. It was fantastic!"

Crissy, crazed with passion after seeing Tammy cream, crawled over to
her father. She licked his balls, her tongue swiping off gobs of cum.
She sucked on his limp prick, cleaning it with her sucking lips and
swishing tongue.

Douglas groaned, finally pushing his daughter away. "No more, Crissy.
Christ!"

Crissy giggled and attacked Tammy. She rolled her sister over and
stared at her fucked-out pussy. Cum oozed freely from her cunt hole.
"Oooooh, are you gonna taste good now."

"No, Crissy," Tammy protested. "I couldn't take it!"

Crissy didn't care. She forced her sister's legs apart and plastered
her mouth to the girl's pussy. She sucked, getting great thick globs of
cum into her mouth. She swallowed the cum greedily, then reamed Tammy's
pussy, searching for more delicious cum. If Tammy tasted good this
morning, she was fabulous tonight with cum oozing from her cunt hole.

Tammy screamed as another orgasm almost made her faint.

Crissy feasted for what seemed like an hour, but was only minutes. With
her face covered with cum, she sat up, looked at them both. "We're
gonna have more fun together than anybody else in the world."

Douglas hauled his two daughters into his arms. "You two kids are
fantastic."

"We know, Daddy," Crissy said, giggling.

Douglas cradled their heads. In minutes they were all asleep.


                             Chapter 6


Douglas opened his eyes, and he felt his two naked daughters' warm
bodies next to his. He heaved a sigh. It had been quite a day. Except
for eating, they had spent the whole day in bed. He rolled over and
looked at the clock. "Your Uncle Harry will be here soon," he said.

Crissy lifted her head and smiled. She rubbed her hand down over her
father's hard frame and found his cock. "He'd shit a brick if he found
us all in bed like this." She stroked her father's prick.

Douglas moaned. His kids were sex-crazy and he wondered how long he
would be able to handle all of their passion.

Tammy, awakened by their talk, cuddled closer to her father, her mouth
already licking at his chest while her hand joined Crissy's at his
cock. "Maybe he'll go away if nobody answers the door."

Douglas lay on his back, savoring the light caresses of his daughters'
hands and their warm urgent mouths. "Maybe it would be a good idea if
we did invite him to join us," he suggested. "You two little nymphos
are going to kill me."

Crissy giggled, slipped down under the covers and gobbled her father's
limp prick into her mouth. She sucked, lathered his cock with her spit.

"Baby," Douglas groaned. "God, don't you get enough?"

"Never," Crissy giggled, coming up from under the sheets. "Maybe I
should go down and entertain Uncle Harry."

Douglas grinned while he fondled Tammy's large creamy tits. "Harry
always has had a thing for you, Crissy. I think he'd love sticking his
cock in you."

"Ohhh, shit," Crissy sighed. She scrambled out of bed, her small tits
jiggling. "You two play. When I'm done getting Uncle Harry to fuck me,
I'll bring him up here for a party."

Tammy kicked the sheets off, exposing her naked body. She scrambled
into her father's arms. "Now, I've got you all to myself."

Douglas held her, the ache in groin returning. "Put on something real
sexy, Crissy. Blow his mind."

Crissy tingled. Her whole life had changed since yesterday morning. She
grabbed a pair of tight shorts and slipped them on. The cheeks of her
ass peeked out and the crotch dug erotically into the gash of her
pussy. "God. I'm creaming already."

Douglas, his hand cupping Tammy's wet pussy, watched as Crissy slipped
on a skimpy halter. "Your uncle will have an instant hard-on when he
sees you."

Crissy looked at herself in the mirror and liked what she saw. Quickly,
she combed her hair, sweeping it into a long ponytail. "I hope Uncle
Harry likes 'em young, hot and willing."

"You described my brother perfectly," Douglas said, his cock throbbing
under Tammy's manipulating hands. "Tease him good and proper, baby."

"I will, Daddy." She glanced back over her shoulder and saw Tammy
feasting on her father's cock, her pussy directly over her father's
face. "Chew her up, Daddy."

Douglas groaned, pulled Tammy's pussy to his mouth and sucked.

Crissy left the bedroom. Her sister and father were too busy eating
each other to talk. She hurried downstairs to wait for her uncle, her
young body sizzling, eager to sample another cock.

Crissy was sitting on the couch when the doorbell rang. She almost
jumped out of her skin. "Oooooh, shit," she sighed, bouncing up from
the couch and hurrying to the door.

"Hi, honey," Harry said when Crissy opened the door. His breath caught
in his chest as he leered hotly at his young sexy niece. "Your father's
expecting me."

"Come on in, Uncle Harry," Crissy purred, tingling under his hot
glances. She went into his arms, rubbing her body against his, her lips
grazing wetly over his open mouth. "You haven't been around in weeks."

Harry's groin turned to cement and he held her for a moment, aware of
her soft young body pressed against his. He forced her out of his arms,
his face flushed, his cock growing rapidly in his pants.

Crissy took his hand, and she pulled him toward the couch. "You get
comfortable. I'll make you a drink."

Harry plopped on the couch and leered at his niece's ass as she
strolled over to the bar. "Whewww. I wonder how Doug manages to keep
his hands off her," he mumbled under his breath.

"Did you say something?" Crissy cooed.

"Nothin', honey." He stared at her ass as the soft creamy flesh of her
asscheeks peeked out from under the tight-fitting shorts. His cock had
stiffened into a raging hard-on. It happened every time he came over to
visit his brother, but today, his hot sexy little niece seemed to be
even sexier than ever.

Crissy felt his stare on her ass. She bent over, gave him a good view
as she picked up a piece of lint from the rug. She heard his breath
suck in, and it turned her on.

"Here's your drink, Uncle Harry," she said, walking toward him, her
small tits jiggling under the loose skimpy halter.

Harry devoured her with his eyes. "Where's your father?"

"He'll be home in a few hours. He said to wait, and for me to keep you
comfortable." She licked her lips and winked. "You don't mind, do you?"

"Not at all, honey," Harry said, his voice raspy.

"I'm glad," Crissy mewled, cuddling up against him on the couch. "I
know I'm only a teenager, but maybe we can find some things to do while
we wait for Daddy."

Harry's cock ached in his pants. He felt the pressure of her tit
against his arm and the sweet scent of her perfume invaded his head.
The things he wanted to do, he knew for sure Douglas wouldn't like at
all. He took a large gulp of his drink.

"Can I have some?" Crissy asked, rubbing her tit against his arm.

"Aren't you a little young to be drinking?" he said as Crissy took the
glass from his hand.

"I've been drunk before," she purred, gulping down the drink. "Mmmmm,
tastes good."

"You better be careful who you get drunk with," Harry said, watching
her go to the bar to make another drink. "Some boy might take advantage
of you."

"Oooooh, I don't like boys," Crissy said, bringing him a much stronger
drink. She stood in front of him. "I like men."

Harry's eyes focused on her crotch and the seam of her shorts cutting
into her pussy. He took the drink, then swallowed half of it. It was
going to be a long two hours.

Crissy glanced down at his crotch and saw the bulge. It turned her on,
knowing she could make a man hot. "Do you like young girls, Uncle
Harry?" She took his half empty glass and drained it.

Harry stared, his mouth drying up and the bulge in his pants growing
larger. "Every man likes young girls," Harry said, his voice husky, his
gaze riveted to Crissy's plump tits straining against her sexy halter.

"As young as me?" she purred, taking a deep breath, her nipples
swelling, outlined erotically against the pink material of her top.

"You're just a baby," Harry said, a lump growing in his throat.

She spun around, and swinging her ass, went back to the bar and made
another drink. "The boys don't think I'm a baby," she said, handing him
another drink. "They're always trying to get fresh with me."

"Do you let them?" he asked hoarsely, gulping thirstily on the fresh
drink.

"Never," she said, enjoying her teasing game. "I don't want some dumb
boy pawing at my tits." Her blue eyes brightened. "They're always
trying to stick their hands down my shorts and touch my pussy, too,"
she added breathlessly.

Harry's mind filled with an image of Crissy naked. "You can't blame
them," he said. "You're a very sexy girl."

She leaned over, planting a wet kiss on her uncle's mouth. "Thank you,
Uncle Harry."

Harry's eyes gazed into the top of her halter and saw the plump creamy
flesh of her tits. It took all of his willpower not to grab her and
haul her into his arms.

Crissy knew where he was looking and she stayed bent over, giving him a
real good look.

"Maybe I should go," Harry said, finding it difficult to keep his hands
off his young niece. "I'll come back when Doug's here."

"No," she pouted. She moved his arms and plopped on his lap. "Daddy
would never forgive me if I didn't keep you entertained while he was
gone."

The entertainment Harry had in mind, he was sure, Doug would never
approve of. He tried getting her off his lap, but she locked her arms
around his neck.

"Am I too young for you, Uncle Harry?" She brought her mouth to his ear
and flicked out her tongue.

"Jesus, Crissy," Harry moaned. She was squirming on his cock and the
pain filled his groin.

"Drinking all that whiskey made me high."

"Come on, honey," Harry rasped, the temptation to rape his hot sexy
niece growing stronger.

She rubbed against him and wiggled her ass. "I think your cock is
sticking me in the ass," she giggled. "I think you have a hard-on."

She grabbed his drink, stood up, and gulped it down. "Did I get you all
hot and bothered, Uncle Harry?"

Harry leered hungrily at his niece. His cock was throbbing and the
taste of her warm wet lips lingered in his mind.

"You didn't answer me," she teased. "Am I too young for you?"

"You're a baby," he said, his voice low, laced with desire for his sexy
blonde niece.

"Oooooh, Uncle Harry." She smoothed her hands over her tits, her hips
rocking gently from side to side. "I'll bet we could have a lot of fun
together before Daddy gets home."

"You better stop fucking around, honey," he warned. "I'm not some punk
kid you can tease."

"I don't wanna tease you," she said. "I want to make love to you, like
a woman."

He stared, watched her fondle her tits through her halter. "You're a
virgin, Crissy. Jesus Christ! I'm your uncle."

"I'm not a virgin," she said, licking her lips. In the next instant,
she whisked off her halter, bared her tits proudly, and enjoyed the
shocked expression of lust on her uncle's face.

"God, Crissy. I can't take much more of this." He ogled her tits. They
were beautiful, creamy, capped with pink rosy nipples.

"You like looking at them?" she asked breathlessly. She hefted them in
her hands. "Not as big as Tammy's, but nice enough, huh?"

The palms of Harry's hands were sweaty. He reached for his niece, his
lust raging like a fire in his balls. He spanned her creamy tits as she
stepped eagerly toward him. "Unnnn, Crissy!"

"Aaaaah!" she gasped, her knees buckling as she allowed her uncle to
fondle her tits. "Ooooh, Uncle Harry. You're making me cream."

Harry didn't believe what was happening. He was playing with his
brother's young teenaged daughter and he couldn't stop himself.
"Crissy," he groaned, his fingers sinking into the pliant meat of her
sweet succulent tits. "We gotta stop."

"Noooo, Uncle Harry. I don't wanna stop. It feels too good." She
stepped back out of his grasping hands. "You want me to take off my
shorts?"

Harry could do nothing but nod his head in agreement.

"Then you can prove it to yourself that I lost my cherry." She peeled
off her shorts, kicked them across the room, then displayed her young
naked body blatantly for her uncle's delight.

"Jesus, honey. You're gorgeous."

She stood close, legs spread, her breathing shallow. Her blue eyes
glowed with the passion that raged in her hot moist pussy. "Touch my
pussy, Uncle Harry. Stick in your finger."

"Unnn, Crissy." He brought his hands to his niece's lithe naked body.
He caressed her hips, her slim narrow waist, and her silky thighs. His
cock felt as if it were going to bust. "Crissy. We gotta stop."

"No, Uncle Harry," she cooed, knowing he was only talking. "Stick your
finger in my pussy." She wiggled her hips. "I'm all gooey inside."

Harry cupped the cheeks of her ass with one hand and slipped his other
hand between her legs. The sweet scent of her overheated pussy met his
nostrils as he stroked his finger through her wet sticky cunt gash.

"Inside!" she gasped. "Finger-fuck my pussy." She jerked, pulling his
head to her stomach. "Finger my pussy."

Harry jabbed a finger deep into Crissy's cunt. Nothing blocked his way.
"Damn," he muttered under his breath as her hot spongy cunt muscles
began to pulse and contract around his buried finger.

"Oooooh! I told you!" she cried. "Finger me. Do it fast and make me
cream. I'm ready to explode." Teasing her uncle, and knowing they would
end up fucking on the living room floor, had her crazy hot.

Harry jabbed his fingers in and out of her fuckhole. Warm squishy cunt-
cream coated his fingers. Her cushiony pussy muscles gripped tightly
around his fingers. He kneaded the cheeks of her ass, his head reeling.
"Goddamn, you're a hot little bitch."

"Yessss," she hissed through clenched teeth. "Hot for cock. Your cock,
Uncle Harry!" She jerked her hips, rotating them, and ground her cunt
down on her uncle's jabbing fingers.

"My asshole, too," she moaned, then realized what she had said.
"Finger-fuck my asshole, too."

Harry didn't believe it. His baby niece was creaming his fingers,
begging to have her asshole fingered. It blew his mind.

"Please, Uncle Harry. Finger my asshole while I cum."

Harry obliged his horny niece. He jabbed one finger into her asshole,
twisting it. At the same time, he jabbed another finger into her pussy.

"Ahhhh!" she wailed, jerking and thrashing on her uncle's stabbing
fingers. "Ooooh, I love it!"

An explosive climax ripped through her pussy. Her head jerked back,
snapping from side to side, her ponytail swishing across her crimson
face. Her knees buckled and she almost collapsed.

"I'm cumming, Uncle Harry. I'm creaming your fuckin' fingers." She
humped forward, driving his fingers into her pussy. Her ass rotated
frantically, her uncle's finger in her asshole, sending her squealing
into another mind-bending orgasm.

"Ooooh, I'm cumming. Oooooh, shit! I can't stand up." She fell against
her uncle, clawing her nails through his hair.

Harry kept her from falling. He fucked her pussy with his fingers, fed
her tight narrow shitter with another finger. The child's screams had
him crazy and he thought for sure he was going to cream his pants like
some damn kid. "Crissy," he groaned as hot frothy pussy-cum oozed from
her cunt and dribbled down his hand and wrist. "Sweet little Crissy."

Crissy grabbed him as her legs turned to rubber. She swayed, a high-
pitched scream rushing from her mouth. "I'm falling. Ooooh, Christ!"

With Crissy thrashing and twisting in his arms, Harry did his best to
keep her on her feet, but she was wiggling and twisting too much even
for him. "Jesus Fucking Christ!"

A shuddering spasm ripped through her cunt. Her back stiffened, then
her entire body went into spastic twitches and she seemed to melt to
the floor, Harry's fingers popping from her hot sizzling body.

Harry stared down at his young niece writhing on her back. He wanted to
tear off his clothes and rape her, but he controlled himself. She was
his brother's daughter and only a baby. His cock thought differently.
It throbbed for the heat of Crissy's pussy, making him groan in agony.

Crissy writhed lewdly on the rug, her glassy blue eyes staring up at
her uncle. She knew he was fighting the urge to fuck her. She also knew
he wouldn't be able to control his desire much longer. Knowing this
made her cream again, and she let out a low moaning rasp as another
orgasm caromed through her cunt.

"You're something, honey," Harry mouthed. Unconsciously, he rubbed his
cock through his pants.

"Let me do that, Uncle Harry," she whispered. "I love playing with
cocks." She pulled herself up, crawling over between his legs. "I love
sucking cocks, too."

Harry groaned and allowed his niece to attack his zipper. "Do whatever
you want, honey." He decided that if he were going to lose his battle
with his conscience, he might as well enjoy it.

Crissy pulled down his zipper and she fished inside his pants. Her hot
anxious fingers gripped the thick stem of his throbbing cock. She
pulled it out and stared wide-eyed at his long fat throbbing cock.
"Oooooh, Uncle Harry. It's gorgeous."

"Maybe too big for you," he said, figuring it was some kid who popped
her cherry.

"Oh, no," she sighed. "It's perfect." She held his cock in her hands
and looked up at his lust-crazed face. "It was a man who broke my
cherry, Uncle Harry." She licked her lips, smiled. "His cock was just
as big as yours."

"Christ!" Harry gasped, wondering what man had been lucky enough to get
between Crissy's beautiful legs and make her a woman. He stroked her
flushed face with his fingers. "Let me see how good you are with your
mouth, honey."

"I'm real good," she boasted. "I can take it all." She opened her
mouth, then closed it over the bloated head of her uncle's cock.

"Ahhhhh, Crissy," Harry groaned. The heat of her wet mouth shot down
through his prick shaft and churned the cum rumbling in his balls.
"Suck it, honey. Suck it all!" He no longer cared that she was his
brother's child. All that mattered was that the hot little bitch suck
him off.

With the head of his cock against the roof of her mouth, Crissy stroked
his fat veiny prick shaft with her hands. She sucked, getting a tasty
drop of cum in her mouth. Her tongue swirled around his pisser and warm
drooling spit oozed from her mouth, drenching his cock shaft and her
stroking fingers.

Harry jerked his ass up from the couch, driving the head of his cock
into her throat. He groaned, his chest heaving as Crissy's teeth
clamped into his thick prick shaft. He dropped back, grunting as she
released her viselike grip. "Christ, Crissy, don't bite it off."

"Oooh, I won't bite it off," she giggled, popping her mouth off his
prick. "If I did that, you wouldn't be able to fuck me."

Harry moaned as he imagined himself between his niece's legs, ramming
home his cock. "Give it a good suck and I'll give you good fuck."

"Promise?"

He reached down, placed the palms of his hands on her innocent face and
brought her mouth to his prick. "Stop talking and suck."

Crissy closed her lips around his prick. She sucked hard, drawing in
her cheeks. She used her tongue, whipping it across the underside of
his prick as she eased his meaty cock into her throat.

"Unnnn, Crissy!" He squirmed on the couch, his prick swelling inside
his niece's mouth. "Suck it, honey. Chew your uncle up real good."

Crissy gurgled, stifling a gag as the head of her uncle's prick
stretched her throat. She used her teeth, scraping them along his
sensitive prick shaft as she gobbled every hard inch of his cock into
her gullet.

Her mouth and throat stuffed with cockmeat, she slammed her face
forward, mashing her lips against his zipper. His hard thick cock
throbbed and she felt as if it had stabbed into her belly. Eyes bulging
and breathing hard through her nose, she kept his prick buried in her
throat, wallowing in the strength of his throbbing prick and the joy
she experienced in giving her uncle pleasure.

Harry looked down and groaned deep in his throat. She had gobbled his
entire cock into her mouth. It was unbelievable. He couldn't wait until
he fucked her pussy. He had found in his young niece a hot lustful
woman, and he intended to make the most of it before Douglas found out
and busted his head open.

Crissy gulped and eased back, her teeth dragging along the length of
his cock shaft. She gasped, spittle drooling from her clinging lips.
She stopped, only the head of his prick in her mouth.

She pulled off for a second. "Fuck my face!" she gasped, then plunged
her mouth back down over his cockhead.

Harry lunged up, driving his prick into her face. His cock fucked her
gullet, his groin whacking against her lips. He lunged up again,
slamming his prick over and over again into his niece's gobbling wet
mouth.

Crissy savored each thrust of his cock, shuddering each time his prick
stretched and filled her throat. She used her tongue like a wet whip,
lashing it over his cock shaft as he plowed her face with hard
lightning fuck-stabs.

"Crissy," Harry growled, drilling her sucking mouth with his cock.
"Jesus ... Christ!" He jerked his ass off the couch and twisted his
hips. His cock skewered her throat. "Aghhh!"

Crissy sucked. Her uncle's prick was delicious. Her young mind swirled
with lust. She felt each fuck-stab, loving it when his zipper scraped
against her wet clinging lips. Gurgling, she felt his cock grow thicker
in her mouth and she knew it wouldn't be long before hot cum flooded
her throat.

"Unnn, Crissy," Harry groaned deep in his throat. He battled her
sucking mouth, not wanting to cream his niece's face. He didn't want it
to end in her mouth. Her pussy was where his cock belonged. He jerked
on the couch, holding the rumbling cum in his balls in check.

Crissy was out of her mind--first her father, now her uncle. She sucked
wildly, taking his long thick cock into her throat. Her head started to
bob up and down, matching her uncle's pace. She pulled at his pants,
clawing his hard groin with her nails.

Harry's balls began to rumble. His face twisted in agony. "Crissy," he
rasped. His back stiffened and his muscles tensed as he found it almost
impossible to stop his balls from erupting.

Crissy, sensing his reluctance to cream her face, pulled her mouth off
his cock. "Cum in my mouth, Uncle Harry. I'll suck you hard again so
you can fuck me." She licked her lips. "I love cum."

Harry nodded, knowing his little niece could do what she said. "Then
eat it, honey, and I'll give you every fuckin' drop I have."

"Ooooh, sounds good." Like a vulture, she brought her lips back to his
prick and gobbled it into her mouth. She took his prick to his balls,
his cock hair now tickling her nose. She felt his prick swell in her
throat and knew it wouldn't be long now. Swooning, she jerked her head
up and down, her sucking mouth churning the cum in her uncle's balls.

"Un ... un ... un!" Harry grunted, his ass humping up and down. He
fucked her face, his balls ready to burst.

With her mouth covering his prick, Crissy used her tongue and licked
his jabbing cock shaft. She sucked hard, her cheeks drawing in as she
urged the cum in his balls to erupt. Her teeth gnawed, her jaw working
rhythmically from side to side. She felt her uncle tense and she went
wild.

"I'm cumming," Harry roared, his voice filling the living room. He
slammed up into her mouth. "Aghhhh! I'm cumming!" His balls burst,
shooting a blast of thick white cum into his niece's tight wet throat.
It squirted deep. "Aghhh, Crissy!"

Crissy gulped the first thick wad. Her eyes bulged and she used her
mouth, meeting his upward thrusts, slamming her mouth down over the
length of his cock. She gulped, taking the steady squirting stream of
thick cum into her mouth and throat. It flooded her cheeks and she
gagged, but never stopped. She was hungry, needing it all to satisfy
her passion until he fucked her.

Harry fucked her throat, his hips jerking, his balls churning out cum
as fast as Crissy sucked it into her mouth. "Crissy!" he howled,
lunging up, his cock fucking deep into her throat. "Aghhh!" His balls
ached, the suction from his niece's mouth draining them.

Cum gushed from Crissy's clinging lips and her nose. It poured down her
throat and made her gag. Her nails raked the thick wrinkled skin of his
balls, making him roar like a lion.

She sucked maniacally, wanting every drop of her uncle's cum. Her head
bobbed up and down at a faster pace. She used her teeth, her tongue and
her lips. One deep suck filled her cheeks with a thick load.

Harry's slamming thrusts slowed as his balls emptied. He grunted, his
ass jerking, his prick still spurting, but with less force.

Crissy wouldn't stop. She grabbed the base of his prick shaft. It was
sticky with cum and spit. She jerked her fist up and down, her mouth
meeting her lips. Moaning, she sucked and jerked his cock until he
howled for her to stop.

Harry plunged up one last time, smashing his prick into her mouth. "No
more, Crissy." He dropped back to the couch, groaning, his prick still
trapped in his niece's mouth.

Crissy sucked the last few drops from his spent prick and she pulled
her mouth off. Cum dribbled from her lips and down her chin. A thin
stringy gob dropped to her nipple. "How did you like that, Uncle
Harry?" she panted as she licked her lips clean.

Harry rubbed his cock. "You're better than any woman I've ever had."

"I'm even better with a cock up my pussy."

"I'm counting on it, honey," he said. "I'm counting on it."


                              Chapter 7


Seething with lust, Crissy pulled her uncle down to the floor. Her
breathing was noisy and rapid, like a bitch in heat. She pulled at his
clothes, stripping him completely. Her hot glassy blue eyes devoured
her uncle's naked body. "I'm gonna get you hard again," she panted.

Harry ogled his lust-crazed naked niece. Her face was {rushed, eyes
bright, spit dribbling from the corners of her panting mouth. He rubbed
his limp sticky prick. "I'm sure you can."

Crissy straddled his thick hairy leg. She pressed her cunt down on his
thigh, soaking his skin with warm pussy-cream. "Oooooh, Uncle Harry.
I'm burning up inside."

Harry moaned. The heat of her cunt-cream seared through his thigh and
attacked his balls. The little sex maniac would have him hard in record
time. He was positive.

Gasping, Crissy glided her wet seeping cunt over her uncle's thigh and
down across his knee. She paused, ground her hips, and mangled her clit
against his knee. Her head snapped back as she screamed. "Ahhhhh!"

Harry jerked his knee and watched her face contort in bliss. He rubbed
his prick. It was beginning to grow. Just looking at the wild teenager
was enough to give any man a hard-on, no matter how many times he had
been fucked.

"It's getting hard," she moaned, delighted with the sexual power she
possessed. "God, it'll be stiff as hell any minute."

"I know," Harry grunted, jabbing his knee into her sopping-wet pussy.

"Oooooh, Uncle Harry!" she wailed, twisting her hips and mangling her
cunt against his knee. "Holy Christ!"

Crissy greased his shin and banged the cheeks of her ass against his
foot. With a glazed drunken expression on her flushed excited face, she
lifted her cunt. "Watch!" she gasped.

Harry groaned, his eyes fixed on his horny niece.

"Mmmmm," she hummed, trembling as she thought about what she was going
to do. In the next instant, she slammed her pussy down, driving her
uncle's foot into her cunt. "Aghhhh!"

"Jesus Christ, Crissy!" Harry growled.

Gasping, Crissy rotated her hips. Hot buttery pussy-cream coated his
toes and drooled down his foot. "It feels fantastic. Wiggle your toes."

Harry grunted and did what she wanted. "You hot little bitch."

"Oooooh, I'm creaming!" Her head snapped back, her blue eyes floating.
"I feel your fuckin' toes!"

Jerking and twisting, Crissy fucked herself on her uncle's foot. Tits
bouncing, her nipples ready to burst, she slammed her pussy up and
down, her uncle's toes jabbing deeper with each downward plunge.
"Ahhhhh!"

A spasm ripped through her cunt. She shuddered and stiffened, then
toppled off her uncle's foot. "I'm so hot, Uncle Harry," she babbled as
she squirmed on the floor. "So fuckin' hot."

She reached for his cock. It was thick, yet still not rock-hard the way
she wanted it. Moaning like a bitch in heat, she pushed her hands
against her uncle's hips. "Roll over. I wanna eat your ass."

Harry rolled over willingly. It wasn't everyday that hot some nympho
wanted to chew on his ass. The fact that it was his teenaged niece made
it that much more exciting.

Drooling, her blue eyes flickering with the lust raging in her pussy,
Crissy crawled over her uncle. She attacked him like a wild tigress,
nipping her way down his back to the cheeks of his ass.

"Jesus, Crissy," he groaned, his cock mashed into the carpet. He jerked
his hips, twisted and groaned under her attacking mouth.

Crissy reached his ass and chewed. She crawled between his legs, gnawed
on his thighs, and licked the back of his thick-skinned ball-sac. She
coated his balls with warm spit, soaked his thighs, then whimpering,
she chewed hungrily on his asscheeks.

"Honey," he groaned, jerking under Crissy's hard snipping bites. "Easy,
for Christ's sake!"

Crissy was too involved and hot to hear her uncle's groans. She spread
the cheeks of his ass, slapped her tongue up through his crack and
soaked his wrinkled shitter with her spit. "Mmmmm, it looks so
delicious."

"Honey ... suck it ... out!" He jerked his hips, smashing his ass
against her face.

"Unnnnnn," she moaned as her uncle smashed her face. She reached under,
grabbed his cock with both hands and squeezed.

"Aghhhh," Harry growled, his prick a prisoner of his niece's gripping
fingers. He thrashed on the floor, jabbing his thickening cock through
Crissy's hands. He slammed back, bucking his hips as Crissy's tongue
tormented his asshole.

Crissy chewed greedily on the soft flesh around his asshole, then
plunged her tongue into his shitter. She reamed his asshole, her
fingers mauling his cock. Her own body writhed, her tits scraping
against the carpet. Her clit, swollen with blood, scratched against the
nap of the rug.

She jammed her hips forward, mashing her clit into the rug and moaned,
her cries of lust lost in the flesh of her uncle's ass. She wormed her
tongue deep, slobbering spit into his shitter, and roughly played with
his prick.

Harry's cock stiffened into a rigid beam. He jerked back, whacking his
ass against his niece's face. "Honey," he groaned. "I'm ready! Christ!"

Panting and gasping for air, she pulled her face away from her uncle's
ass. She released his cock and scrambled up onto her haunches, waiting
like an insane animal for her uncle to roll over onto his back.

"Get on your back, Crissy," Harry said. "I'm goin' to fuck the shit out
of you."

Dazed, her head reeling, she laughed lewdly. "You'd have to fuck my
asshole if you want my shit." She stared at his prick stabbing the air.
"I need it in my pussy."

She scrambled over her uncle's body, straddling his hips. His cock
jutted up hard and inviting. She squiggled her hips, rubbing his hard-
on against her belly. "Oooooh, I think I'm crazy, Uncle Harry."

"I know you are," he rumbled, his voice deep, coated with lust. "Stick
it the fuck in."

Lewd animal sounds escaped her drooling mouth. Crissy leered hotly at
her uncle. She released his prick, jerked her hips, then slammed down,
pressing his cock against his groin. The puffy lips of her overheated
pussy wrapped around his cock shaft and warm sudsy pussy-cream flowed
out, drenching him in its sticky heat.

"Oooooh, it's throbbing. I feel it." She glided her cunt back and forth
over his prick, soaking it in pussy-cream. She lowered her head,
watched her tits jiggle and saw Harry's cockhead peek out as she jerked
her hips back.

"Unnnnn." She moved forward and felt his cock slide through her cunt
gash. "Oooooh, I'm ready for it!" she squealed. "Ready to be fucked!"

So was Harry. His niece had turned his balls into hot coals. His prick,
engorged with blood, ached to be buried up inside her teenaged pussy.
"Me, too, Crissy. Climb on and fuck yourself to death."

Trembling, her tits shaking, her mouth open, her eyes wide and glassy,
Crissy lifted her pussy from her uncle's cock. His prick twitched and
stabbed the air. "Oooooh, here I come!"

Harry stiffened, his body rigid as he waited for his niece to plunge
herself down onto his cock.

Crissy slammed down, impaling herself on his prick. "Ahhhhh!" Her head
snapped back and her face turned beet-red. "It's in me! Oooooh, Christ
in heaven! It's in me!"

Harry groaned. Her hot pussy muscles surrounded his prick, clutching
and pulsing against his cock shaft. Warm cream oozed out, flowing over
his cum-stuffed balls. "Crissy!" He jerked up, then dropped back, his
cock buried to the hilt.

Crissy twisted and screamed as she fucked herself blind on her uncle's
prick. Swaying, she leaned back, balancing herself on stiff arms as she
rotated her hips. "It's gonna rip through my belly!" she cried out.
"Oooooh, God. I'm going crazy!"

With Crissy wriggling her hips, Harry felt as if his cock were going to
break inside her pussy. He lunged up, jabbing his cock hard into her
cunt. Her screams drove him on and he lunged up again, drilling his
bent prick into the cushiony walls of her oozing cunt. She was
fantastic.

"Crissy," he groaned, slicing up into her pussy. "Gimme your tits." He
jabbed up again, stabbing her fuck hole.

Crissy struggled, brought herself up and ground her cunt down on his
cock. She jutted out her tits and leered at her uncle. "Pull 'em.
Squeeze 'em. Make 'em hurt." She lifted up, then slammed down, a lewd
expression on her face as she made her uncle grunt.

If she wanted it rough, Harry wanted to please her. He grabbed her tits
in his big hands and twisted the soft flesh until Crissy screamed in
pain. "Enough?" he rasped.

"Noooo!" she screeched. "More!" She slammed down on his prick again,
jerking her hips and tugging on his cock shaft with the greedy muscles
of her cunt.

Harry mauled her tits and humped up with his hips, his cock piercing
her spongy wet pussy. He yanked on her tits and felt her nipples burn
into his palms. His cock was throbbing, the steamy juice of her cunt
greasing his prick shaft, oozing out and coating his balls.

Crissy went wild on her uncle's cock. She leaned forward, mangling her
clit against his hard groin. "Oooooh, shit!" she squealed.

"You're rippin' my fuckin' tits off!" She slammed down, making her
uncle groan.

Harry released her tits, and he kneaded her quivering body until his
big hands spanned her wiggling hips. He jerked her back and forth, his
cock gliding in and out of her wet pulsing cunt. "Cream, honey. Cream
my fuckin' prick."

"Yessss, Uncle Harry!" she wailed, swinging her tits back and forth.
She dangled her small fleshy tits over his mouth and twisted her hips.
"Bite! Bite off my fuckin' nipples."

Harry lifted his head, latched his teeth sadistically onto one swollen
nipple and chewed. Crissy screamed. He lifted his ass from the rug,
fucking his cock into her cunt. Crissy howled.

"Yeahhhhh!" she cried out, the pain from Harry's chewing teeth fanning
the flames of passion raging in her cock-stuffed pussy. "I love it.
Oooooh, holy Jesus! I love it!"

Harry turned Crissy's creamy tits to a glistening red. Teeth marks
blotched her flesh. He sucked one nipple, chewing the tip, his hands
mauling her jiggling hips. His cock felt as if it were going to burst.
"Crissy," he groaned. "Cream!"

Crissy was bouncing crazily on her uncle's cock. Each fuck-stab felt as
if he were ripping into her belly. She jerked her shoulders and
screamed as Harry's teeth sunk into her sensitive nipple.

Harry grabbed his niece, held her lithe trembling body and rolled her
over onto her back. Grinning, he stared down at her face. "Now, you're
gonna cum, you crazy little bitch."

"Fuck me," she whimpered. "Fuck me." She lunged up and ground her clit
against his groin. "Make me cum all over your cock."

Harry eased his cock from her pussy, then jabbed forward, the head of
his prick spearing the hot scalding depths of her pussy. He did it
again, watching his niece writhe in ecstasy beneath him. "How's that,
Crissy?" he rasped, his voice ragged.

"Unnnn, more!" She clawed his shoulders and chest, her hips grinding
her clit against his groin. "Fuck me!"

Harry slammed her back onto the carpet. Crissy's screams followed each
vicious jab. Lust ate away at his brain and he fucked her young body
blindly, carrying them both to the peak.

"Harder! Harder!" she shrieked, battling her uncle, meeting his thrusts
with upward humps. "Oooooh, Uncle Harry!"

Crissy twisted and squirmed, her ass scraping against the nap of the
rug. She caught his rhythm, fucking herself insanely on his skewering
prick. Her small tits, still red and sore, jiggled with each gasping
breath she took. "I'm almost there!"

Harry obliged his niece's shrieking cries. He fucked into her pussy,
his cock a battering ram, slamming her twisting hot sizzling body back
onto the rug. "Crissy," he grunted. "Sweet ... Crissy!"

His cock swelled, ready to burst. It throbbed, the blood surging
through his prick shaft at the boiling point. His balls rumbled, ached
with the heavy load of cum that churned inside. "Cum!"

Twisting and squirming her hips, she clawed her uncle's arms. For a
second, she seemed to freeze, then went into her orgasm. "I'm cumming!
I'm creamin' ... Uncle Harry!"

Her climax ripped through her cunt as she slammed up against her
uncle's pounding groin. Cum gushed from the pulsing walls of her
exploding pussy, bathing Harry's hard throbbing cock. "I'm cumming!
Oooooh, keep fuckin' me!"

Harry rode the fury of his teenaged niece's orgasm. He fucked her, his
cock keeping her in a wild state of screaming bliss. The hot cum of her
pussy and the pulsing muscles that attacked his stabbing cock shaft
brought him to the edge. His balls erupted.

"I'm cumming," he roared, his deep ragged voice filling the room. "I'm
cumming!" Hot white cum spewed from his pisser, splattering the steamy
depths of Crissy's climaxing cunt. He jabbed, grinding her into the
carpet as another hot spraying stream of cum shot from his cock and
flooded his niece's fuck hole.

They slammed against each other, their pounding bodies slapping noisily
together each time Crissy lunged up and Harry slammed her back. Harry's
deep grunts blended with Crissy's wailing screams. His cum squirted
into her cunt, mixing with the gushing cum from her pulsing pussy
walls.

"Oooooh, I'm still cumming!" Crissy cried. The hot sticky mixture of
their cum gushed from her pussy. "Fuck me! Fuck me!"

Harry drove her twisting body back onto the floor. His cock sliced
through the oozing goo, fucking deep, his balls still churning out more
of his white thick jizz.

"Ooooh, I feel your cum!" she screamed. "I'm so full!" She went insane.
Her young lithe body wrenched and twisted beneath her uncle's powerful
frame. She clung to him with her arms, wrapped her legs around his
jabbing hips, and pounded his back with her heels.

"Keep making me cream!" She jerked up, slamming her young body against
his hard frame. Her hips bucked and rolled while her cunt exploded
again. "I'm still cumming!"

Harry's balls rumbled, his grunts turning to gasps as the child beneath
him tried to drain his body. His hips lunged forward and his arms gave
out. He crushed her beneath him, his cock fucking violently in and out
of her cunt. "Crissy! Crissy!"

Crissy threw herself against his pounding body. Another jolt of passion
caromed through her pussy. She stiffened and trembled, her entire body
feeling as if it were going to break. Her mouth opened, but nothing
came out except garbled gasps of joy. "Aghhh!"

Harry groaned, his prick and balls empty. His hot sexy niece had
drained him completely. He rolled off, his chest heaving as he sucked
air into his lungs.

"Ooooh, Uncle Harry," she purred. She squeezed her thighs together and
felt the cum squish inside her pussy.

"We better get dressed," Harry said. He sat up, reaching for his
clothes. "Your father will be home soon."

Crissy giggled. "We have plenty of time." She scrambled to her feet,
spread her legs and offered her uncle her hand. "Come on up to my
bedroom. I got a surprise for you."

"Better make it quick," Harry said, getting to his feet. "Your father
will bust my head open if he catches us."

Crissy took his hand, and she led him to the stairs. "I think you're
going to like my surprise."

Harry nodded, his gaze glued to her small wiggling ass as they climbed
the stairs. "Just make it quick, honey."

Crissy threw open the door to the bedroom, then led her uncle inside.
"Say hello to Daddy, Uncle Harry." She giggled and stepped aside.

"Holy Christ!" Harry groaned. He stood dead in his tracks, staring at
his brother, who lay on the bed between Tammy's parted thighs.
"Goddamn!"

Tammy waved, her face flushed and her tits jiggling. "Hi, Uncle Harry,"
she cooed, her hips squirming as her father licked his tongue up
through her pussy.

Douglas pulled his head out from between Tammy's long parted legs. He
leered at his brother, a wide lewd grin on his juice-stained face.
"Glad you could join us, Harry. These two hot little nymphos are too
much for just one man."

Harry groaned, his head reeling as he plopped into a chair. "I always
wondered if you were making it with your kids."

"We just started last night," Crissy giggled, dropping into her uncle's
lap. She rubbed her bare ass against his limp prick. "Let's watch. When
Daddy's done, you can fuck Tammy."

"Mmmmm, I'd love that," Tammy purred, her tongue flicking out over her
lips.

Douglas stroked his fingers through Tammy's wet pussy. Hot cream coated
his fingers. "How did you like making it with Crissy?" Douglas asked.

Harry fondled Crissy's small plump tits. "She's fantastic." He dropped
his hand between her thighs. "I sure would have liked bustin' her
cherry."

Douglas grinned. "No more cherries in this house. I took care of them
last night."

"Ooooh, Daddy," Tammy moaned. "Lick me off while I look at Uncle
Harry." She squirmed on the bed. "You wanna watch me cum, Uncle Harry?"

"I sure do, Tammy," he said, ogling the teenager's large tits. "Then
I'll fuck you."

"Ooooh, Uncle Harry," Tammy crooned. She humped up, her pussy pulsing
against her father's jabbing fingers. "Eat me, Daddy."

"Eat her, Doug," Harry groaned. "Prime her pussy for my cock."

Crissy squirmed on her uncle's lap and rubbed her tits against his
chest, her mouth showering his face with kisses. "Eat her, Daddy, then
I'll suck you off."

Douglas pulled his fingers from his daughter's cunt. "I'll make the
little nympho scream her fuckin' head off." "Yes, Daddy. Make me
crazy!" Tammy writhed on her back, her pussy dripping, overheated and
pulsing for her father's tongue.

Douglas forgot about Harry and Crissy. He turned around and stared at
Tammy's cunt. "Now where was I?"

"You had your mouth on my cunt and your tongue in my fuck hole," Tammy
said.

"Ummmm, I remember now." He dropped his head back between Tammy's
juice-stained thighs. The sweet succulent scent of her pussy attacked
his nostrils. "Nice tender cuntmeat."

"Ooooh, stop teasing me, Daddy," Tammy moaned. "Eat me!" Her green eyes
flashed, leering at her uncle. "I'm so hot for your cock, Uncle Harry."

Douglas plunged his tongue into his daughter's pussy, sucking the puffy
folds into his mouth and chewed. Warm sudsy pussycream flowed over his
face and into his mouth. He chewed harder, making his daughter wail
with pleasure.

"I'm creaming, Daddy!" Tammy wailed, her eyes fixed on her uncle. "I'm
creaming!" She humped, her tits jiggling, her ass squiggling on the
bed. "Ooooh, Daddy! You're chewing me up!"

Douglas' tongue flashed up through Tammy's wet seeping cunt gash. A
glistening flow of pussy-cream drenched his tongue, his face, and
dribbled down his neck. He swirled the buttery ooze around Tammy's
swollen cuntlips, then sucked deep. She was delicious. It wasn't every
man who had two young girls to fuck and suck.

Orgasms skimmed through Tammy's pussy. The inside of her cunt
contracted, gripping an imaginary cock. She rotated her hips and ground
her cunt into her father's mouth. "Ooooh, Daddy! I'm cumming all over
your face."

Douglas whipped his tongue over her clit, then sucked it into his
mouth. As he chewed, Tammy's squeals of pleasure grew louder. Holding
her clit with his teeth, he lashed the tip with his tongue.

Tammy was out of her skull. Having an audience drove her wild. "I'm
creaming!" she screamed. "Watch me!"

Douglas slipped his hands under Tammy's jiggling ass. He mauled her
flesh and chomped on her pussy. Cum flowed over his face, into his
mouth. He chewed harder, his head shaking from side to side, her clit
trapped between his teeth.

"Daddy! Daddy!" Tammy's big creamy tits were flopping. She grabbed
them, squeezed, then screamed as her father's teeth sunk into her
pulsing blood-engorged clit. "Aghhhh! Don't stop now, Daddy!"

Saliva drooled from her panting mouth. Her green eyes stared at Crissy
and her uncle. Her hips twisted, her ass humped, and she clawed the
sheet with her nails. "Oooooh, don't ever stop, Daddy!"

Douglas gnawed roughly on her clit. The taste of his daughter's pussy
was fantastic. He sucked her clit, plunged his tongue into her fuck
hole and felt her muscles try to capture him. He dug his blunt fingers
into the cheeks of her ass, found her crack and shoved one finger in.

"Aghhhhh, Daddy!" Humping wildly, Tammy bucked her hips, mashing her
cunt into her father's mouth as she jerked back and twisted on his ass-
stabbing finger. "I'm cumming, Daddy! Oooooh, I'm so fuckin' hot!"

She arched her back and shuddered. "Ahhh!" Another spasm racked her
young overheated body. She lifted her ass, jerked, then crashed back to
the bed. "Now, Uncle Harry."

Douglas pulled his cum-stained face away from his daughter's pussy.
"She's all yours, Harry. Fuck her to death."

Crissy leaped off her uncle's lap, and Harry hurried to the bed, his
cock stiff, throbbing for the hot red-haired cunt of his niece.

Douglas sat in the chair, allowing Crissy to lick his face clean.

Ten minutes later, Tammy and her uncle screamed as their bodies
exploded in orgasm. Douglas' voice joined in the chorus as Crissy's
gobbling mouth sucked his cum from his balls.

The two men spent the day in bed, sharing and enjoying Crissy and her
sister, Tammy.

Chapter 8


Crissy tingled with excitement as she stood in the shower, the hot
water beating against her tits. She lathered her pussy and ass with
sweet-smelling soap. "Ooooh, shit!" she gasped, the rough washcloth
rubbing against her sensitive clit.

She soaped her tits, sighing as her nipples swelled and ached for her
father's mouth. Leaning back against the tiled shower stall, she rinsed
her tits. Spasms rippled through her hot young body as she rinsed her
cunt and ass.

By the time she had stepped out of the shower and dried herself, she
was sizzling hot, her pussy frothy with juice. She padded into the
bedroom and looked at her naked body in the mirror.

Five days ago she had thought no man would want a child. She had
learned differently. Her father and uncle were crazy about her body and
couldn't get enough of it. "Mmmm," she purred. "Today, I'll have them
all to myself."

"Ooooh, God," she sighed. It was what she had wanted since recruiting
her uncle into the sex games with her father and sister. Tammy, she
knew, would be gone all day and her father and uncle were downstairs
waiting. It blew her mind.

She fluffed her blonde hair, then slipped a pair of black-lace
crotchless panties on. The lace tickled her exposed clit, sending goose
bumps up and down her spine. She slipped on the matching bra, the front
cut out so that her pink nipples could peek out erotically. She had
bought the sexy things yesterday, knowing she would have her father and
uncle to herself today.

To keep her surprise a secret, she pulled a robe on and left the
bedroom, tying the sash tightly around her slim waist as she hurried
down the stairs for an afternoon of fantastic sex.

Douglas was at the bar, sipping beer. Harry was on the couch, a drink
in his hand. Both turned to face Crissy as she strolled into the living
room.

"What took you so long?" Doug asked, leering hotly at his young
daughter.

"Yeah, honey," Harry said. "You getting yourself off in the shower?"

Crissy giggled, shivering under the ogling gazes of her father and
uncle. "I was washing my pussy and asshole," she said with a wink. She
joined her father at the bar, poured herself a stiff drink, then gulped
down half of it.

"Don't get drunk, baby," Douglas said. "It dulls the senses." He leaned
over and kissed his little daughter on the mouth.

Crissy sucked his tongue, then pulled away. "Just a little buzz," she
giggled. "It makes fuckin' around more fun."

"You hiding anything under that robe?" Harry asked, his hand on his
crotch.

"A surprise," she cooed, finishing her drink. She rubbed her father's
crotch. "Mmmm, you're hard already."

"I get hard every time you come into the room," Doug said. He finished
his beer and joined Harry on the couch.

"You hard, too, Uncle Harry?" Crissy purred. She stood in the center of
the living room, both men giving her their undivided attention.

"Hard as a rock, honey," he said. "You can check anytime you want."

"I will," she giggled. "Soon." Crissy swooned. Today was going to be
the best day of her life.

She parted her robe, giving the two horny men a peek at what was
underneath. Her heart was pounding and her pussy was on fire.

Doug gulped back the lump in his throat, his eyes fixed on his luscious
daughter as the robe opened completely. "Crissy. God, you're gorgeous."

Crissy licked her lips and slipped the robe off her shoulders. It
melted to the floor and she shuddered as tiny orgasms rippled through
her cunt.

"Damn," Harry groaned. "You're better than any woman, Crissy." His eyes
bugged out as he leered at his young sexy niece.

Crissy paraded around the room, modeling for her father and uncle.
"There's no crotch," she said, parting her legs. "You can fuck me with
my panties on if you want."

"My cock feels like a rock," Harry said, his eyes devouring his niece.

"Mine, too," Doug said, enjoying the sight of his beautiful daughter.

"I'm creaming," Crissy moaned. "God, the way you two are looking at me,
I can't help but cream."

She walked over to them. "Rip off my bra, Daddy." She took a deep
breath and waited.

Douglas grabbed the flimsy material and yanked. It came away in his
hand, baring her plump creamy tits. "Baby," he rasped.

She shook her tits and rubbed them against her father's hand. "Play
with 'em," she moaned, enjoying the attention of both men. "Pinch 'em."

Her father pinched her nipple. He grabbed her creamy flesh, pawing her
as his cock throbbed in his pants.

"You, too, Uncle Harry." She trembled as her uncle mauled her other
tit. It was great not having to share her father and uncle with Tammy.

She wiggled her hips, her blonde hair swishing across her face. "Make
me hot!" she gasped, tingling under the pawing hands of her father and
uncle. "Make me cream."

Harry kneaded one plump tit, his cock aching. "Come on, honey. Let's
get down to some action."

"Yeah, baby," Douglas said. He grabbed her panties in a fit of passion,
tearing them from her hot little body. The sight of her blonde-haired
pussy made his balls rumble.

"Ooooh, Daddy," she giggled, stepping back out of their pawing hands.
"Look what you've done." She turned around, jiggling the cheeks of her
ass.

Harry reached out, mauling her ass, his finger teasing at the crack of
her asshole. "I'm gonna fuck your ass today, Crissy."

Crissy gasped and shoved back, allowing her uncle's finger to invade
the tight narrow canal of her shitter. "Oooooh, I know! I know!"

She moved away and faced them. "Take off your clothes," she squealed.

Quickly, both men stripped, their long thick cocks stabbing out from
their hairy groins.

Crissy gasped, feasting her eyes on their cocks. Today, they both
belonged to her and she intended to savor every minute of it. She was
in her glory.

"I'm gonna suck you both off," she said, her blue eyes glowing with
passion. Crissy dropped to her knees, and she crawled to her father and
uncle. She straightened up, grabbed both pricks, one in each hand, and
stroked them. "Ooooh, so much cockmeat for me to eat."

Harry groaned as he felt her hot breath on the head of his bloated
cock. "Suck it, Crissy. Get it nice and hard for your asshole."

"Me, too," Douglas groaned, his hips jerking his prick through his
daughter's fist.

Crissy brought her mouth to her uncle's cock, closed her lips around
his bloated prick head and sucked. A thick drop of precum oozed into
her mouth and she smeared it over her lips and the head of her uncle's
prick. "You're seeping, Uncle Harry," she cooed, after taking her mouth
off his prick.

She brought her mouth back to her uncle's prick, then sucked deep,
enjoying his groans of pleasure. She squeezed her father's prick,
jerking his cockshaft with long sensuous strokes.

Douglas looked down at his daughter as she sucked his brother's prick.
It seemed like only yesterday that she was an innocent baby. Now she
was more of a woman than anyone he had ever known. "My turn," he
rasped. "Don't forget me."

Crissy popped her mouth off her uncle's prick. "I could never forget
you, Daddy." She tugged on both pricks, then squiggled over to her
father's cock and soaked it with her tongue. "Mmmm, delicious."

Douglas jerked, driving his prick into her mouth, his cockhead spearing
her throat.

Crissy sunk her teeth into his cockshaft. She pulled back, dragging her
teeth along his prick. "Get on the floor. It'll be easier for me."

Douglas dropped to the floor on his back, his prick stabbing the air.
"Come and get it, baby."

Crissy crawled over between his legs. She looked back at her uncle.
"Play with my pussy and ass," she purred, "while I suck Daddy."

"Whatever you want, honey. It's your party." Harry got down on the
floor, fondled his niece's ass and slim hips. He smoothed his hands
over her back and watched as she lowered her head to his brother's
prick.

Crissy gobbled the head of her father's cock into her mouth. One deep
noisy suck brought his bell-shaped cockhead into her throat. She didn't
stop. Gobbling voraciously, she took his prick to the root, stopping
only when her lips were mashed against the hair of his groin.

"Ahhh, baby," Douglas groaned. He lunged up, stabbing his prick into
her gullet. Each jab mashed his daughter's lips onto his groin.

Crissy scratched her nails like a cat over her father's hairy stomach.
She gulped on his lunging prick, breathing hard through her nose each
time he pierced her throat. She used her teeth and gnawed on his
drilling cockshaft.

Harry dipped his hands between Crissy's thighs, stroking his fingers
along the wet puffy gash of her pussy. Warm sticky cunt-cream flowed
over his hand. "She's soaked, Doug," he groaned. "A fuckin' furnace
ready to be fucked."

Crissy popped her mouth off her father's prick. "Not yet, Uncle Harry.
Finger me first. Make me crazy!" She tilted her head and gobbled on the
length of her father's prick.

Harry jabbed three fingers into his niece's cunt, then twisted his
fingers, the blunt tips gouging at the spongy walls of her fuckhole.

"Ahhhh!" Crissy gasped, her head snapping back. "Keep fingering me! My
asshole, too!"

Harry grinned and shook his head in amazement as he watched her writhe
under his jabbing fingers. "You got a great daughter, Doug." He jabbed
the sopping walls of her cunt, his prick aching to be in her ass.

Crissy was in heaven. "Ooooh, Daddy. Uncle Harry is making me crazy!"
She wiggled her hips and jammed back. "Tell him to finger my ass! Get
it ready for your cock, Uncle Harry!"

Doug reached down, grabbed her thick blonde hair and forced his prick
into her mouth. "Eat it, baby. Make me harder." He lunged up, fucking
her throat. Groaning, he collapsed back on the floor, twitching as her
teeth gnawed away at his throbbing cockshaft.

Crissy sucked, gnawed and whipped her tongue over and around his
cockshaft. She was in bliss as she enjoyed both her father and uncle.

Working her ass in tight jerky circles, she ground back at her uncle's
plunging fingers. She feasted on her father's prick, eager for her
uncle to ream her ass and prime it for his cock.

Harry jabbed a finger into Crissy's tight asshole. He twisted his
finger, gouging at the dry walls of her narrow shitter. He raked both
his niece's fuckholes, watching her hips jerk and twist as his cock
throbbed to take the place of his fingers.

Doug humped up, blindly fucking his prick in and out of his daughter's
throat. "Baby," he groaned. "Chew me! Aghhh!"

Crissy lost her mind. She sucked, sinking her teeth into her father's
cockshaft, shoved back and massaged her uncle's buried fingers with her
pussy and asshole muscles. Gasping moans gurgled deep in her throat.
Spittle dribbled from her mouth, down her father's prickshaft as she
bobbed her head rapidly up and down.

Harry pulled his fingers from her body and watched as she went into
spasms. Grinning lewdly, he took his juice-stained fingers and rammed
them into her ass, stretching her shitter wide, preparing it for his
long thick cock.

With three fingers stuffed in her ass, Crissy snapped her head away
from her father's cock. "Ayieeee!" she squealed. She stared at her
father, her face red with passion, her blue eyes glassy and dilated.
"He's fingering my asshole, Daddy!"

"Chew me, baby. Get me ready for your pussy."

"I'll prime her, Doug," Harry groaned. With his fingers still buried in
Crissy's asshole, he aimed his throbbing cock at her pussy. "Here,
Crissy, feed on this awhile." He jabbed, stabbing his prick in to the
root with one fast lunge.

Crissy almost collapsed. She dropped her head, swallowing her father's
prick into her mouth. She chewed, pulled back and gasped for air.
"Ooooh, Daddy. He's fuckin' me! He's fuckin' me!" She swooned, her blue
eyes glazed.

Harry ripped into her pussy, cunt juice greasing his prickshaft. It
flowed over his jabbing cock, bathing it, greasing it for her asshole.
"I think she's ready," he grunted, fucking his prick in and out of her
cunthole, his fingers plunging into her ass.

"I am ready!" Crissy gasped. "Ready for both your cocks." Dazed,
passion bubbling in her veins, she jerked forward, forcing her uncle's
cock and fingers to pop out of her cunt and asshole. "A double fuck!"
she cried. "Ooooh, God!"

Crissy began to shake. She stared first at her father's spit-soaked
prick, then at her uncle's cream-coated cock. She straddled her father,
then plunged down, burying his cock to the root. "Ahhhh!" Her cunt
contracted, gripping her father's prick. "Ooooh, Daddy! Daddy!"

Douglas grabbed his daughter's plump tits and squeezed. He pulled her
forward, his cock throbbing inside her steamy pussy. "Now, baby. It's
time you really learned what it's like to be a woman."

Crissy's eyes popped. Her mouth dropped open. "Yessss!" she wailed.
"Ooooh, yesss!"

Harry crawled behind his niece, his prick swinging, coated in the soupy
froth of her pussy. He grabbed her jerking hips and saw the base of his
brother's cock, the rest buried up inside her pussy. Warm cream oozed
out from her clinging cuntlips, down over Doug's balls.

"Hurry, Uncle Harry!" she sobbed drunkenly. She wriggled her ass, the
frantic action grinding her clit against her father's hard groin.

"Ooooh, Daddy! Make him hurry!" She rolled her hips from side to side,
twisting her clit against his groin. "Make him hurry!"

"Stop jerkin' your fuckin' ass," Harry groaned, his prick throbbing,
his cockhead seeping.

"Ooooh, Uncle Harry," she moaned. "I can't stop. Daddy's cock feels too
good!" She humped on her father's cock, her cunt muscles twitching
around his buried hard-on.

Harry pawed her hips, gripping them tightly in his hands, holding her
steady for a second. He jabbed, the head of his cock slicing through
the tight wrinkled crack of her asshole. He stabbed again, burying half
his cock in her shitter.

"Aghhhh!" Crissy jerked like a wildcat. "All of it! Every fuckin'
inch!" She shoved back, trying to capture his prick.

Harry slammed in again. The juicy cream of Crissy's pussy had done the
trick. His entire cock ripped into her asshole, his groin now flush
with her creamy asscheeks. He eased back, then drove forward again, his
cock fucking easily through the tight ring of her ass.

Crissy leered at her father's face. "Ooooh, Daddy! He's so deep! Ooooh,
it feels so good." She was drunk with passion, reeling under the double
pleasure of having both her uncle's and father's cocks buried up inside
her scalding body. "Oooooh! Fuck me! Fuck me!"

Doug mauled her tits, his cock throbbing up inside her pussy. "We're
gonna cream you, baby."

"I know, Daddy!" she gasped. "I know!" She was delirious. Spit drooled
from her mouth. "I love it!" It was fantastic and she couldn't wait
until their hot cum flooded her body.

Harry's head was spinning. His cock was buried to the hilt, the muscles
of her ass clutching his prickshaft like a hot vise. He parted her
creamy asscheeks and leered at his buried prick and the tight muscle of
her asshole wrapped around his cockshaft. He jerked back and felt her
muscles tug greedily to keep him buried.

"Put it back!" Crissy wailed hysterically. She worked her hips in a
flurry of frenzied circles. "Rip open my ass!"

Harry glanced down at his brother and nodded. He lunged forward,
driving his cock deep into her ass. At the same time, Douglas slammed
up, ramming his prick deep into her pussy. The two vicious jabs almost
split the screaming teenager in two. They fucked her violently, her
screams of joy filling the living room.

Crissy snapped her head from side to side, her blonde hair whipping
across her crimson face. "Ooooh, Daddy! Uncle Harry!" She absorbed
their hard punishing jabs, thrived on them, battled back, squeezing
every ounce of pleasure from her first double fuck. "Faster, Daddy!
Harder, Uncle Harry! Fuck me! Oooooh, God, I'm goin' crazy!"

Harry ravaged his niece's asshole with hard stabbing thrusts. His
balls, crammed with cum, slapped painfully against her quivering body.
He growled, his face twisting into a mask of sheer lust. He gritted his
teeth, his lips drawing back, giving his face a maniacal look. Harder
and harder, he plunged his prick in and out of her tight gripping
shitter, grunting with each powerful fuck-stab.

Douglas lunged up, slamming his prick into her hot pulsing pussy. With
his brother's prick jabbing her asshole, it made his daughter's pussy
that much tighter. His ass lifted off the floor as he groaned, then
thudded back as Crissy ground her clit against his groin. "Baby. Sweet
... Crissy!" He drilled his prick into her pussy as hot sudsy cream
greased his cockshaft and soaked his balls.

Crissy twisted and churned, bucking like a crazed animal between them.
She saw the passion in her father's face, then turned her head and saw
the same lust in her uncle's eyes. "Oooooh, God!" she cried, knowing
she was turning them both into madmen bent on ripping her apart.
"Ooooh, God in heaven!"

"Harder! Harder!" she screamed as they fucked her with fast demanding
thrusts. She went wild, her body jerking frantically under the
devastating attack. "Oooooh, Christ! I'm goin' out of my fuckin' mind!"

At the mercy of their stabbing cocks, Crissy found their rhythm, caught
the demanding pace and climbed screaming to the peak. "Ooooh, I'm
getting close! So damn fuckin' close!"

Douglas fucked his prick into her pussy, slamming in and out of her
gripping cunthole, his ass whacking into the carpet each time she
slammed back down on his cock. He held her tits, twisted them and made
her scream. He watched her face contort with lust. It swelled his cock,
rumbled the cum in his balls.

Harry thrust forward, driving Crissy against Douglas' lunging body,
mashing her clit on his groin. Each jab brought him closer to emptying
his balls. "Soon, my hot little bitch!" he roared, his prick engorged
with blood and throbbing in the narrow hole of her shitter. "Soon!"

Crissy was swooning. She felt the pressure of her climax mount in her
cunt. She felt each fuck-stab of their cocks. She felt them swell
inside her holes, stretching her beyond anything she had ever dreamed
of. It was going to happen and it blew her mind. "Oooooh, cream me!
Cream me!"

She stared at her father as his hands kneaded her tits. "Uncle Harry's
gonna cum, Daddy! He's ready to cream my ass!"

Harry let out a deep roar. His balls rumbled, then exploded. The hot
cum churning in his balls shot through his bloated cockshaft. It
squirted from his pisser like a hot geyser, flooding the narrow canal
of Crissy's shitter. "I'm cumming! Aghhhh, Crissy!"

"He's creaming me, Daddy! He's creaming my asshole!" Her virgin asshole
gulped at Harry's squirting cock. "He's squirting me, Daddy! Ahhhh ...
a ... hot ... enema!"

She bucked under her uncle's spurting cock, using her muscles to milk
his plowing prick. "More! More!" she screamed greedily. "Drown me!"

Harry was out of his skull. He pounded his niece with hard blind fuck-
stabs. His balls rumbled, then erupted again, spewing thick stringy
wads of jizz into her asshole. "Crissy!" he bellowed, his cum greasing
her shitter for faster speed. "I'm creaming!"

Harry lashed at her twisting body, his balls sore as they whacked her
ass. He went faster, his cum keeping her asshole slippery. He held her
hips and fucked, his prick constantly squirting her ass as he grunted.

Crissy crashed forward, her clit a mangled mass of raw meat. She
twisted and ground her clit against her father's groin. Spasms racked
her body. "Cum, Daddy! Cream my pussy!"

She worked her ass in quick frenzied jerks, keeping her uncle's cock
buried and squirting hot cum into her asshole. She used her cunt
muscles to make her father cream her pussy. Hot contractions swept
through her cunt and she felt her father's body stiffen and knew he was
ready. She was, too.

"Daddy! Daddy!" An orgasm erupted deep in her cunt. "I'm cumming!
Creaming!" She bucked as her orgasm caromed through her cock-stuffed
cunthole. "Cum! Cum!"

Douglas saw the lust twist his daughter's face. He felt the fury of her
climaxing cunt against his fucking prick. He glanced at his brother
fucking her ass and enjoyed the shuddering spasms that shook his
daughter.

Douglas lunged up. His cock exploded. Hot cum spewed from his pisser.
Thick globs flooded her cunt. "I'm cumming, baby! I'm cumming!"

"Ahhhh!" she wailed, her cunt filling with cum, mixing with her own hot
creamy juices. His cum squirted into her pussy, triggering another
explosive orgasm in her. Thrashing and screaming, she climaxed again.

"I'm cumming all over your cock, Daddy!" She bucked. "Oooooh, I'm
creaming!"

Douglas' cock blasted out thick wads of cum. He flooded her overheated
pussy, mixing his sticky cum with her bubbling juices. Squishy noises
blended with her cries of joy each time he fucked his cock through her
cum-stuffed cunt.

Their thick spurting cocks slammed into Crissy's climaxing body. They
fucked her, grunting and panting as she creamed. Two thick cocks
sprayed her fuckholes with cum. Jizz oozed from her pussy and seeped
from her jiggling ass. Cum trickled down her crack, coated both sets of
thick-skinned balls.

"I can't stop cumming, Daddy," she shrieked at the top of her lungs.
"Oooooh, I can't stop!" Her head snapped from side to side, her blonde
hair lashing across her father's face and her own. She twisted her
shoulders. Her father's hands pulled and mauled her tits. Her clit,
mashed against her father's groin, was raw and pulsing, sending hot
spasms through her cunt.

Harry matched his niece's bucking jerks. He lunged hard, fucking his
prick into her ass at a reckless pace. His balls rumbled, their spewing
load of jizz almost gone. He mangled the soft flesh of her hips and
plowed her hot body with all the strength he possessed.

Harry's back stiffened. He shuddered, gulping for air, his chest
heaving. His cock was buried to the hilt, her ass keeping him a
prisoner.

"Don't take it out!" she screeched, her hips rotating frantically. She
wrenched her body and slammed her pussy down on her father's cock,
grinding her clit on his groin. Another orgasm rifled through her
pussy.

Harry was exhausted. He dropped back, his cum-coated cock popping from
her tight ass. He saw his cum dribbling from her ass. "Jesus," he
rasped, falling back on the floor to watch her ride her father.

With her asshole empty, Crissy rode her father's cunt-splitting cock
with wild abandonment. Quick jerks and frenzied twists had her howling
as Douglas spurted wad after wad of cum into her pussy. Her head
twisted, her eyes glazed, she stared at her uncle while she continued
to grind her clit on her father's groin.

Tammy came in the door and froze in her tracks. Her eyes took in the
scene at a glance. It blew her mind. "Jesus," she mumbled, stripping
off her clothes as quickly as possible. She joined her uncle on the
floor, saw his spent cock, knew where it had been, and gobbled it into
her mouth.

Crissy was too busy cumming to notice. She pounded her body against her
father's, almost tearing her tits from her chest in her crazed wild
contortions. "Daddy! Daddy!" she wailed.

Douglas arched his back. "Baby!" His hands slipped to her gyrating
hips. He drove his hips up, fucking her cunt as his strength began to
ebb. "Ooooh, baby!"

Cum gushed from her cushiony pussy walls. It drenched his prick.
"Daddy!" She hammered her body onto his, then collapsed, panting and
drooling, her mouth fused to his neck.

Douglas held his daughter as she trembled in his arms. "You're a woman
now," he whispered, stroking her back.

Tammy pulled her mouth from her uncle's cock and she crawled over to
Crissy and her father. She pushed Crissy off and attacked her father's
cock, sucking him clean.

Crissy fell back onto the floor, cum oozing from both her fuck holes.
She sighed, stared blankly up at the ceiling.

Tammy finished with her father, then turned her attention to Crissy.
"Now you!" she gasped.

"Oooh, no," Crissy moaned, but it was too late. Tammy was already
between her legs, sucking her father's cum from her pussy.

Tammy's mouth gobbled hungrily, drawing out every wad of her father's
cum from Crissy's pussy. Crazed with what she had seen, she rolled
Crissy over, attacked her ass and feasted on her uncle's cum as it
oozed from Crissy's ass.

Finished with them all, she sat up. "Now, it's my turn."

Both men groaned.

Crissy staggered to her feet. The day had been perfect. She didn't care
if Tammy enjoyed the same pleasures. She giggled, blew them all a kiss
and left. Today, she had really become a woman.


                                 The End

Virgin Girl Scout Ripe to Eat

Brigit Astar on Incest Stories

Nikkie Louiston undressed in her bedroom and put on her girl scout outfit, picked up the cloth bag filled with boxes of cookies, and then headed out. She called to her mother as she went through the living room: “Mom, I’m going.” Her mother answered from the kitchen: “Hold on, dear.”  
 
Nikkie waited impatiently at the living room door. Her mother came from the kitchen and asked her: “Where exactly are you going Are you selling or are you delivering”  
 
“I’m delivering. I’m going to some of the places on the list.”  
 
&ldquo

Read More
;I’ll drive you,” her mother said.  
 
“Oh Mom, no. I’m just going to a few places—four or five—just around the neighborhood. To Aunt Clara’s and Mrs. Wallace and the Simmons’, and Uncle Gerald. Just the ones who have placed orders for the cookies and are within walking distance.”  
 
“Okay, dear, but remember, dinner is at six. Don’t let Aunt Clara trap you into having tea and talking, or else she’ll keep you there and you’ll never get out.”  
 
“I know,” Nikkie replied. “Well, I’m on my way.”  
 
She left her house and walked down the residential street, planning her route as she walked along. Aunt Clara first, she thought, then the Simmons’, then cross the street and down to Mrs. Wallace, and then, last of all, on my way back, Uncle Gerald.  
 
Nikkie was a typical girl scout, in that she was an adolescent, fourteen years old, full of vim and curiosity, and a virgin. She was well-developed for her age; the girl scout outfit she wore fit snugly around her pubescent body, outlining her budding breasts, developing hips and thighs, and her perky rump. The outfit was short, ending a good six inches above her knees, showing plenty of her soft full legs.  
 
She delivered the cookies to Aunt Clara, the Simmons’ and Mrs. Wallace, collected the money, and reflected on how many more boxes she needed to sell to win the computer. She had already sold a total of six dozen boxes of cookies in the past two weeks, but she figured she would need to sell at least that many more to have any chance of coming in first in her scout troop, and winning the grand prize: a brand new pc. But time was running out. There was only one week left in the cookie sale. I need to find people who will buy more than one box, she thought. Maybe Uncle Gerald will.  
 
She made her way to her uncle’s house, thinking about him. Over the past year, he had become more attentive to her, calling her “sweetie” and “honey” (but only when no one else was around), and touching her. Whenever they were alone, he would find some way to touch her, to place his hands on her shoulders or arms or back or hips. Once, he had come to her house when her parents were gone, and he had finally pulled her onto his lap. He had stroked her hip and flank and nuzzled her cheek and neck. She had felt him moving his crotch up and down and around on her rump, and she had felt a stiff lump throbbing and pressing upon her butt. Her uncle’s lips nuzzling her cheek and neck, his hand stroking and softly squeezing her hip and flank, and especially his rotating crotch and that stiff lump throbbing and rubbing upon her rump, had sent a warm tingly fizzy feeling shooting through her body. She wondered what would have happened next had her parents not come home at that time.  
 
She knocked on her uncle’s door and reached in the bag and pulled out a box of cookies. Her uncle opened the door and his face lit up. “Well, well, if it isn’t my favorite niece and girl scout. Come on in, honey.”  
 
She entered her uncle’s house and he closed the door.  
 
“I see you’ve got the cookies.” He said, pulling out his billfold. “Well, I’ve got the money. This should take care of it.” He handed her a bill and she opened her bag. “Let me see, let me get the change,” she said.  
 
“Oh, no change,” he said. “You keep it.”  
 
“But it’s a lot of change I owe you, it’s more than…”  
 
“Don’t worry about it.” he smiled. “Keep it. It’ll help you in your sales.”  
 
“Gee, thanks, Uncle Gerald. It will help. Now, I only need to sell about six dozen more boxes minus the one you bought.”  
 
“Why so many” he asked. She explained about winning the pc, and he smiled and wagged his head. “Well, good luck to you. Maybe I could buy another box from you. But first, let me sample your wares.” He opened the box and pulled out a cookie. “Umm, nice shape.” He slipped an arm around her shoulder and bit into the cookie. “Yum, quite tasty.” He slid a hand down her back. “Here, have a cookie on me.”  
 
“We’re not supposed to eat any of them,” she said.  
 
“But I bought the box, and I’m giving you a cookie. It’s not as if you’re eating up the profits. Here, have one on me, and let’s sit and discuss the possibility of my buying another box from you.”  
 
He guided her to a big chair and sat and pulled her down on his lap.  
 
“I do believe this is the best cookie I’ve ever had,” he nibbled. She smiled and nodded and bit into a cookie….  
 
He brushed his lips on her cheek and neck, stroked her hip, and pressed his crotch upon her rump. He moved his hand up, unbuttoned the top of her scout outfit and slid his hand under her bra. She clasped his arm, holding it back.  
 
“Let me stroke and rub you, honey,” he breathed in her ear. “I’ll buy a box of cookies.”  
 
“You will” she asked.  
 
“Yeah,” he answered. He slid his hand onto a breast and began massaging it. “Oh, honey, you’ve got nice breasts,” he rasped. He briskly stroked her titties, rubbing them good. He began rotating his crotch on her rump, pressing his stiffening cock upon her butt.  
 
He stroked her legs, running a hand between her thighs.  
 
He tugged at her panties, sliding them down. She grasped his arm and pushed back on it. “Let me lick and suck you, honey. I’ll buy another box of cookies.”  
 
He slid her panties off, got down on his knees in front of her, pulled her down in the chair and raised her legs and drew them back. He lowered his head between her thighs and began licking.  
 
He slid his tongue up and down, rubbing and lapping her pussy.  
 
She breathed out heavily, huffing, almost panting. She clasped his head and raised her pelvis up and moved her cunt around on his mouth.  
 
He moved up on her body, sliding between her legs, pressing his crotch on her pubic hair. He stroked his fat dick up and down on her pussy and mashed his full balls upon her ass. Then he began pushing the knob of his prick forward—upon her cunt-slit.  
 
“Unh unh,” she gasped, pulling her pussy back.  
 
He wrapped his arms around her back and tapped his cockhead upon her slit. “Let me do it to you, honey,” he rasped. “Another box. I’ll buy another. Oh honey, I’ll buy three boxes from you.”  
 
“Three boxes” she breathed out.  
 
“Yes, honey, I’ll buy three boxes of cookies from you,” he panted. “Just let me do it to you.” He pushed the head of his dick into her slit, on up to her hymen. “Just let me fuck you!” He strained and heaved and pushed his prick forward, jabbing it against her hymen.  
 
“Ah, yes,” he huffed. “You’re a virgin, aren’t you, honey. Ah yes, virgin pussy!”  
 
He kept straining and pushing his cock forward, till he felt the hymen give. “Oh yes!” he hissed as he popped her cherry.

He didn’t let up. He kept pushing his dick in, stuffing it into her minty channel. Her quim was so tight; it felt like a vise squeezing his prick.  
 
“Oh god, oh Uncle Gerald, oh, it hurts!” she cried. “Oh god, it burns, it hurts so much!”  
 
“It’ll only hurt for a minute, honey,” he huffed as he dug his dick up her quiff. “Then it’ll start feeling so good, you won’t want me to ever stop.”  
 
He began jamming his cock in her, sawing it back and forth. “Fucking you, honey,” he panted. “Oh yes, fucking your virgin cunt. Jesus Christ, I’m fucking my fourteen-year-old virgin niece!”  
 
“Oh, ooh, Ohh!” Nikkie chuffed and puffed and squirmed and writhed as her uncle lustily fucked her. “Oh baby, welcome to the world of fuck!” he hissed.  
 
He felt the cum churning in his fat balls, felt it gush up. He slid his prick out and rubbed it fast and hard on her pussy. He grunted and groaned as he spewed semen on her pubic hair.   

 

Nikkie was growing concerned. There were only a few days left in the cookie sale, and she still had a couple dozen boxes of cookies she needed to sell.  
 
I could contact the people who have already bought some, she thought. They might buy some more—if I explain the situation.  
 
Uncle Gerald, she thought. I bet he would buy some more.  
 
Uncle Gerald would indeed buy some more from her, and not just cookies….  
 
He sat with his arm around his niece’s shoulder. He unzipped his fly and pulled out his dick. “Touch it, honey. Wrap your hand around it and stroke it.”  
 
She rubbed his prick, marveling at the warm silky-smooth firmness of it, and the way it grew in her hand. His cock rose and stiffened, straining and throbbing.  
 
He tugged at her head, pulling it down. “Lick it, honey. Lick and suck it.”  
 
“Unh unh,” she murmured and tried to pull her head back.  
 
“Do it, honey,” he said huskily. “Lick and suck my dick. I’ll buy a box of cookies from you.’  
 
He pulled her head down and guided his cock to her mouth.  
 
“Ah, that’s it,” he breathed out heavily. “Open your mouth, get your lips around my prick. Lick and suck it, honey. Oh yes, use your tongue and lips on it. Suck it, baby. Oh yes, suck my dick.”  
 
He slid his prick into her silky warm wet mouth. “Ah!” he gasped, and began sliding it back and forth. “Oh yes, you’re sucking it now, honey,” he wheezed. “Sucking it good. Ah, your mouth’s so warm and wet and silky smooth. Oh baby, you’re sucking your uncle’s cock. Jesus Christ, yes! Ah, I’m fucking my fourteen-year-old niece’s mouth.”  
 
He felt his balls swelling and tingling and the juice inside of them swirling and churning. He pulled his dick out of her mouth. He didn’t want to shoot his load just yet.  
 
He slid her panties off, turned her over on her hands and knees and got behind her. He lowered his head below her rump and began licking her cunt.  
 
“Oh, ah, umm, ah,” Nikkie cooed with delight as her uncle licked her. His tongue was so thick and wet and he flicked and lapped it all over her pussy.  
 
He slid his hands up to her titties and rubbed and kneaded them as he dug his tongue into her quim and began tongue-fucking her.  
 
“Oh, umm, ah, ooh, oh Uncle Gerald,’ she gasped with pleasure and moved her pelvis around in little circles and twirled her pussy.  
 
He moved up on her back, wrapped his arms around her waist and pressed his crotch upon her rump. He pushed his prick forward against her quiff.  
 
She squirmed and whimpered.  
 
“Ah, don’t worry, honey,” he rasped. “I’m going to buy another box of cookies from you. Ah, I’ll buy two boxes from you, honey.” He strained forward, pushing his cock into her cunny. “Oh yes! Goddamn, I’ll buy three boxes from you!” He huffed and panted as he stuffed his fat dick in her tight quim.  
 
“Ah, oh baby, you’ve got the tightest pussy I’ve ever fucked!”  
 
She gasped and bucked and writhed as her uncle screwed her. He huffed and puffed and hunched as he fucked his pretty fourteen-year-old niece.  
 
His balls throbbed and ached; cum churned in them. He slid his dick out of her cunt.  
 
“Oh, Uncle Gerald, don’t,” she moaned in disappointment. “Don’t take it out. Stick it back in.”  
 
“Unh unh, honey,” he wheezed. “I was just about to cum in your pussy, and I can’t do that. Can’t take the chance of getting you pregnant.”  
 
He lowered his head to her rear end and began kissing and licking it. “Ah, such a sweet soft smooth ass you have,” he said. He slid his tongue between her butt cheeks and began licking, swiping and rubbing her rump crack.  
 
“Oh, ah, oh Uncle Gerald,” she breathed out huskily and began rotating her rear end.  
 
He moved a hand up to one of her breasts and rubbed and squeezed it as he slid his middle finger into her quaff and dug his tongue into her rosebud and began sliding it back and forth.  
 
“Oh god, ah!” she panted and hunched as he tongue-fucked her ass, rubbed and squeezed her tits and finger-fucked her cunt.  
 
His fat dick throbbed and ached; the sperm swirled in his puffy balls. He moved up onto her back, wrapped his arms around her tummy and pressed his hard cock between her ass mounds. He grunted and strained and pushed the knob of his prick upon her rump hole.  
 
She gasped and winced and jerked away. He pulled her back and pushed harder against her ass. “Oh honey, let me frig you,” he wheezed. “I’ll buy more cookies from you—I’ll buy four boxes, five—goddamn, I’ll buy a half-dozen boxes from you!”  
 
“You will? Six boxes—a half dozen?” she breathed out raggedly.  
 
“Yes, a half-dozen,” he panted and pushed his hard cock forward, into her rump hole. “Jesus Christ, yes!” he cried as he dug his dick in her ass.  
 
“Oh god, ooh, ahh,” she gasped as his prick jammed up her channel.  
 
“Ah yes!” he panted with lust as he screwed his fourteen-year-old niece’s butt. “Up your ass, baby, up your sweet virgin ass! Buggerfucking you, frigging your virgin ass, you sweet tight hot-fucking girl scout!”  
 

On the final day of the cookie sale, Nikkie still had six boxes of cookies. But Uncle Gerald helped her out. He bought all the boxes she had left. “I’ve got enough cookies to do me a whole year,” he said. “At least until your next cookie sale.”  
 
Needless to say, Nikkie won the cookie sale and the computer—thanks to Uncle Gerald.